Selected quad for the lemma: order_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
order_n church_n primitive_a time_n 2,288 5 3.9470 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A42789 Tentamen novum continuatum. Or, An answer to Mr Owen's Plea and defense. Wherein Bishop Pearson's chronology about the time of St. Paul's constituting Timothy Bishop of Ephesus, and Titus of Crete, is confirm'd; the second epistle to Timothy demonstrated to have been written in the apostle's latter imprisonment at Rome; and all Mr. Owen's arguments drawn from antiquity for Presbyterian parity and ordination by presbyters, are overthrown. Herein is more particularly prov'd, that the Church of England, ever since the Reformation, believ'd the divine right of bishops. By Thomas Gipps, rector of Bury in Lancashire. Gipps, Thomas, d. 1709.; Pearson, John, 1613-1686. 1699 (1699) Wing G782; ESTC R213800 254,935 222

There are 34 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

in_o their_o history_n write_v by_o jo._n aventinus_n edit_n basil._n 1580._o that_o from_o the_o early_a time_n of_o their_o embrace_a christianity_n they_o have_v bishop_n and_o long_o before_o they_o submit_v their_o neck_n to_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o roman_a pontiff_n i_o have_v make_v some_o collection_n and_o remark_n out_o of_o the_o forementioned_a historian_n but_o will_v not_o trouble_v myself_o or_o reader_n with_o they_o he_o that_o be_v curious_a and_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o search_v into_o the_o principle_n and_o practice_n of_o this_o people_n may_v take_v aventinus_n into_o his_o hand_n and_o satisfy_v himself_o whether_o ever_o there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o the_o boiarians_n be_v without_o bishop_n and_o govern_v by_o presbyter_n only_o it_o be_v not_o indeed_o the_o design_n of_o this_o history_n to_o treat_v of_o this_o argument_n direct_o but_o however_o as_o he_o go_v along_o he_o still_o occasional_o mention_n the_o boiarian_a bishop_n even_o before_o they_o be_v bring_v into_o subjection_n to_o rome_n chap._n xix_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n at_o and_o since_o the_o reformation_n the_o controversy_n at_o last_o be_v bring_v to_o our_o own_o door_n and_o continue_v down_o to_o our_o own_o time_n this_o doctrine_n 112._o say_v mr._n o._n meaning_n the_o identity_n of_o priest_n and_o bishop_n have_v be_v maintain_v also_o by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n both_o popish_a and_o protestant_n hereunto_o belong_v the_o testimony_n which_o he_o have_v in_o dvers_fw-la 〈◊〉_d of_o his_o plea_n draw_v from_o the_o public_a act_n of_o the_o church_n and_o state_n and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d sentiment_n of_o private_a doctor_n both_o of_o the_o roman_a and_o protestant_a communion_n both_o of_o the_o establish_v and_o dissent_v party_n among_o we_o all_o i_o be_o concern_v for_o be_v to_o consider_v whether_o the_o identity_n of_o presbyter_n and_o bishop_n have_v be_v declare_v in_o any_o public_a act_n of_o this_o kingdom_n to_o be_v find_v or_o produce_v by_o mr._n o._n out_o of_o the_o national_a record_n at_o or_o since_o the_o reformation_n for_o it_o be_v nothing_o to_o i_o if_o the_o popish_a church_n of_o england_n be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n with_o our_o dissenter_n as_o perhaps_o many_o papist_n be_v for_o advance_v the_o power_n and_o supremacy_n of_o their_o pontiff_n nor_o be_v it_o my_o business_n to_o account_v for_o every_o casual_a expression_n that_o have_v drop_v from_o the_o pen_n of_o any_o episcopal_a writer_n much_o less_o of_o the_o dissenter_n who_o golden_a say_n make_v up_o a_o great_a part_n of_o those_o numerous_a quotation_n wherewith_o he_o have_v 〈◊〉_d his_o plea_n my_o design_n be_v upon_o mr._n o._n himself_o and_o the_o authority_n he_o have_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o public_a transaction_n or_o such_o as_o be_v direct_v and_o confirm_v by_o the_o government_n mr._n o._n have_v allege_v three_o against_o we_o the_o little_a treatise_n common_o call_v the_o bishop_n book_n another_o called_z the_o institution_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n and_o a_o three_o be_v that_o celebrate_v ms._n 〈◊〉_d publish_v by_o mr._n stillingfleet_n the_o late_a lord_n bishop_n of_o worcester_n in_o his_o irenicum_fw-la all_o which_o as_o i_o shall_v prove_v belong_v unto_o the_o reign_n of_o hen._n viii_o and_o whatever_o opinion_n be_v there_o to_o be_v meet_v with_o be_v not_o to_o be_v impute_v to_o our_o first_o reformer_n at_o least_o not_o as_o their_o fix_a and_o settle_a judgement_n for_o i_o reckon_v that_o in_o hen._n viii_n day_n the_o reformation_n be_v but_o a_o embryo_n in_o the_o womb_n new_o conceive_v not_o bring_v forth_o that_o in_o edward_n vi.'s_n time_n it_o be_v a_o infant_n new_a bear_v and_o in_o its_o swaddle_a clothes_n and_o in_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n arrive_v to_o the_o best_a degree_n of_o perfection_n and_o maturity_n that_o it_o have_v yet_o be_v able_a to_o attain_v unto_o during_o which_o queen_n government_n something_o also_o be_v object_v to_o we_o which_o shall_v be_v examine_v in_o its_o order_n the_o bishop_n book_n be_v a_o explanation_n of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n 50._o the_o creed_n and_o the_o ground_n of_o religion_n fit_v for_o the_o common_a people_n instruction_n it_o be_v compose_v by_o sundry_a bishop_n of_o who_o cranmer_n be_v chief_a by_o virtue_n of_o a_o commission_n issue_v out_o by_o henry_n viii_o in_o the_o year_n 1537._o establish_v by_o parliament_n and_o print_v by_o tho._n barthelet_n with_o this_o title_n the_o godly_a and_o pious_a institution_n of_o a_o christian_a man._n out_o of_o this_o book_n fox_n have_v furnish_v we_o with_o this_o follow_a passage_n 2._o that_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v neither_o in_o the_o scripture_n nor_o in_o the_o write_n of_o any_o authentic_a doctor_n or_o author_n of_o the_o church_n be_v within_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o christ_n do_v ever_o make_v or_o constitute_v any_o distinction_n or_o difference_n to_o be_v in_o the_o preeminence_n of_o power_n order_n or_o jurisdiction_n between_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o and_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o but_o that_o they_o be_v all_o equal_a in_o power_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o there_o be_v now_o and_o since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n any_o such_o diversity_n it_o be_v devise_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o the_o conservation_n of_o good_a order_n and_o unity_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n 114._o from_o hence_o mr._n o._n have_v gather_v for_o he_o refer_v to_o fox_n martyrology_n that_o these_o bishop_n the_o author_n of_o that_o book_n affirm_v the_o difference_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v a_o device_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o not_o mention_v in_o scripture_n ans._n this_o deduction_n be_v downright_a false_a and_o direct_o against_o the_o obvious_a mean_v of_o the_o word_n the_o design_n of_o that_o prince_n at_o that_o time_n be_v to_o throw_v off_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o church_n and_o bishop_n of_o england_n to_o this_o end_n in_o the_o bishop_n book_n it_o be_v affirm_v that_o as_o the_o apostle_n be_v equal_a among_o themselves_o so_o be_v the_o bishop_n equal_a among_o themselves_o in_o the_o apostollcal_a time_n or_o according_a to_o jerom_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o by_o divine_a right_o superior_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o eugubium_n that_o therefore_o as_o i_o anon_o observe_v out_o of_o the_o king_n book_n patriarch_n primate_fw-la metropolitan_n and_o archbishop_n and_o particular_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v original_o no_o preeminence_n and_o authority_n over_o other_o bishop_n particular_o not_o over_o the_o english_a only_o that_o it_o be_v a_o voluntury_n agreement_n among_o themselves_o for_o order_n sake_n but_o from_o the_o beginning_n it_o be_v not_o so_o here_o be_v not_o one_o word_n of_o presbyter_n or_o exempt_n they_o from_o subjection_n unto_o bishop_n now_o that_o i_o have_v not_o do_v the_o least_o wrong_n unto_o this_o book_n i_o appeal_v to_o what_o i_o find_v elsewhere_o take_v thence_o by_o mr._n stripe_n 53._o how_o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v in_o no_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n but_o to_o the_o king_n law_n that_o priest_n and_o bishop_n never_o have_v any_o authority_n by_o the_o gospel_n in_o matter_n civil_a and_o moral_a but_o by_o grant_n and_o gift_n of_o prince_n that_o it_o be_v always_o and_o ever_o shall_v be_v lawful_a unto_o king_n and_o prince_n with_o the_o consent_n of_o their_o parliament_n to_o revoke_v and_o call_v again_o into_o their_o hand_n or_o otherwise_o to_o restrain_v all_o the_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n give_v and_o permit_v by_o their_o authority_n and_o assent_n and_o sufferance_n without_o which_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o other_o bishop_n whatsoever_o shall_v take_v upon_o they_o any_o authority_n or_o jurisdiction_n in_o such_o matter_n as_o 〈◊〉_d civil_a that_o bishop_n be_v not_o worthy_a the_o name_n be_v a_o usurper_n and_o subverter_n of_o the_o kingdom_n that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v a_o catholic_n and_o apostolic_a church_n as_o well_o as_o that_o of_o rome_n that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n in_o superiority_n preeminence_n or_o authority_n of_o one_o bishop_n over_o another_o but_o they_o be_v all_o of_o equal_a power_n and_o dignity_n and_o that_o all_o church_n be_v free_a from_o the_o subjection_n and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o equality_n here_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o beginning_n and_o in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o this_o period_n be_v not_o between_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n in_o the_o same_o church_n but_o between_o bishop_n and_o bishop_n church_n and_o church_n and_o particular_o that_o no_o church_n that_o of_o england_n especial_o be_v subject_a to_o rome_n and_o though_o in_o the_o beginning_n he_o name_v priest_n and_o bishop_n such_o priest_n
proper_a place_n we_o be_v then_o now_o to_o treat_v of_o titus_n and_o inquire_v whether_o he_o be_v the_o supreme_a ruler_n of_o the_o church_n in_o crete_n by_o the_o appointment_n of_o paul_n i_o have_v affirm_v in_o t._n n._n and_o i_o think_v prove_v it_o but_o mr._n o._n tell_v we_o 〈◊〉_d no_o where_o say_v that_o paul_n make_v titus_n bishop_n of_o crete_n ans._n it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o i_o that_o paul_n commit_v to_o he_o the_o supreme_a govern_v power_n over_o that_o church_n i_o 〈◊〉_d not_o about_o the_o word_n bishop_n on_o the_o other_o side_n i_o retort_v that_o it_o be_v no_o where_o say_v that_o paul_n ordain_v or_o constitute_v any_o one_o presbyter_n in_o crete_n will_v it_o follow_v that_o he_o make_v none_o at_o all_o mr._n o._n titus_n be_v leave_v in_o crete_n but_o for_o a_o season_n perhaps_o not_o above_o half_a a_o year_n paul_n charge_v he_o to_o come_v to_o he_o unto_o nicopolis_n etc._n etc._n tit._n 3._o 12._o ans._n according_a to_o my_o hypothesis_n it_o may_v be_v some_o year_n after_o paul_n leave_v crete_n that_o he_o send_v for_o he_o unto_o nicopolis_n the_o apostle_n as_o i_o suppose_v leave_v he_o at_o crete_n as_o he_o sail_v from_o italy_n to_o judaea_n after_o his_o release_n from_o his_o first_o imprisonment_n at_o rome_n and_o long_o after_o as_o he_o be_v return_v to_o italy_n he_o send_v for_o he_o to_o nicopolis_n if_o this_o be_v once_o prove_v as_o i_o promise_v than_o titus_n be_v not_o leave_v in_o crete_n for_o a_o season_n but_o according_a to_o mr._n oh_o hypothesis_n i_o can_v imagine_v that_o titus_n can_v have_v be_v leave_v in_o crete_n half_a a_o month_n far_o enough_o short_a of_o half_a a_o year_n and_o too_o short_a a_o time_n to_o set_v in_o order_n the_o 10._o thing_n that_o be_v lack_v to_o ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o false_a teacher_n to_o rebuke_v they_o and_o that_o with_o all_o authority_n in_o a_o word_n to_o reject_v 〈◊〉_d after_o a_o second_o admonition_n this_o sure_o be_v above_o a_o month_n work_n or_o indeed_o half_a a_o year_n it_o imply_v a_o permanent_a and_o continue_a employment_n i_o say_v according_a to_o mr._n oh_o hypothesis_n titus_n have_v not_o sufficient_a time_n for_o the_o work_n whereunto_o he_o be_v appoint_v for_o he_o attend_v paul_n from_o achaia_n unto_o macedonia_n and_o so_o into_o asia_n till_o they_o arrive_v at_o jerusalem_n of_o all_o which_o i_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o treat_v more_o punctual_o in_o the_o four_o chapter_n however_o it_o can_v i_o own_v be_v deny_v that_o paul_n call_v titus_n from_o crete_n and_o by_o consequence_n it_o will_v be_v say_v he_o be_v not_o the_o fix_a ruler_n or_o bishop_n there_o ans._n the_o resident_a governor_n of_o church_n in_o the_o apostle_n day_n be_v not_o so_o tie_v to_o their_o post_n that_o they_o may_v not_o on_o any_o account_n whatever_o stir_v thence_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o they_o remove_v for_o a_o while_n at_o the_o apostle_n call_v and_o for_o the_o furtherance_n of_o the_o gospel_n unto_o other_o place_n and_o afterward_o return_v to_o their_o residence_n again_o i_o do_v suppose_v titus_n go_v to_o st._n paul_n at_o nicopolis_n and_o thence_o with_o he_o unto_o rome_n that_o as_o he_o return_v back_o unto_o crete_n by_o the_o apostle_n direction_n he_o take_v dalmatia_n in_o his_o way_n 10._o to_o plant_v the_o gospel_n there_o or_o to_o confirm_v the_o church_n what_o become_v of_o he_o afterward_o can_v be_v know_v from_o scripture_n the_o divine_a history_n of_o the_o church_n of_o crete_n reach_v no_o further_a but_o if_o we_o will_v hearken_v as_o in_o reason_n we_o ought_v unto_o what_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o church-history_n we_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o titus_n return_v into_o crete_n for_o there_o he_o die_v and_o be_v bury_v and_o i_o hope_v mr._n o._n who_o seem_v to_o have_v a_o due_a 169._o regard_n unto_o the_o father_n and_o so_o frequent_o quote_v they_o for_o the_o support_n of_o his_o own_o opinion_n will_v take_v notice_n of_o this_o evidence_n eccles._n mr._n o._n here_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o elder_n in_o crete_n be_v choose_v by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d before_o they_o be_v ordain_v by_o titus_n ground_v himself_o upon_o act._n 14._o 23._o where_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v the_o word_n use_v and_o be_v render_v ordain_v but_o imply_v choose_v ans._n although_o this_o be_v not_o to_o the_o point_n here_o debate_v yet_o lest_o i_o shall_v be_v think_v to_o overslip_a a_o difficulty_n i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v not_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n the_o least_o intimation_n of_o the_o multitude_n choose_v the_o elder_n but_o the_o contrary_a rather_o the_o qualification_n and_o fitness_n of_o the_o candidate_n unto_o that_o good_a office_n be_v leave_v unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o titus_n nor_o do_v it_o appear_v in_o act_n 14._o 23._o that_o the_o multitude_n choose_v those_o elder_n there_o speak_v of_o 〈◊〉_d if_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o this_o place_n signify_v ordain_v then_o here_o be_v not_o one_o word_n of_o choose_v they_o but_o if_o it_o signify_v choose_v then_o be_v the_o two_o apostle_n paul_n and_o barnabas_n the_o elector_n as_o well_o as_o the_o ordainer_n why_o not_o so_o god_n first_o without_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o people_n choose_v the_o twelve_o apostle_n act._n 10._o 41._o where_o the_o same_o word_n be_v use_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o then_o ordain_v they_o act._n 2._o by_o anoint_v they_o with_o the_o spirit_n nor_o be_v mr._n o._n mistake_v when_o he_o imagine_v i_o dream_v that_o after_o ordination_n titus_n assign_v those_o elder_n some_o new_a power_n which_o i_o think_v be_v intimate_v in_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o do_v not_o proper_o signify_v to_o ordain_v but_o presupposes_a ordination_n and_o import_v the_o place_n of_o those_o elder_n in_o their_o particular_a station_n and_o this_o i_o believe_v be_v distinct_a from_o their_o ordination_n mr._n o._n after_o a_o tedious_a discourse_n about_o evangelist_n of_o which_o number_n he_o reckon_v 〈◊〉_d and_o titus_n have_v contend_v 121._o that_o be_v unfixt_v officer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o which_o more_o hereafter_o believe_v it_o a_o degrade_n they_o who_o have_v a_o general_a power_n over_o all_o the_o church_n to_o tie_v they_o to_o residence_n in_o one_o particular_a church_n make_v ordinary_a officer_n of_o '_o they_o ans._n i_o do_v not_o apprehend_v this_o to_o be_v a_o degrade_n they_o for_o whilst_o they_o continue_v the_o companion_n and_o fellow_n labourer_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o unfixt_v officer_n of_o the_o church_n they_o can_v proper_o be_v say_v to_o have_v have_v a_o general_a power_n over_o all_o church_n but_o be_v continual_o at_o the_o beck_n and_o command_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o dispatch_v such_o order_n as_o be_v from_o time_n to_o time_n give_v they_o as_o they_o have_v no_o certain_a place_n of_o residence_n so_o neither_o have_v they_o any_o certain_a work_n but_o be_v like_o reformades_n in_o a_o army_n who_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v but_o what_o the_o general_n by_o a_o special_a order_n employ_v they_o in_o upon_o sudden_a occasion_n if_o it_o be_v allowable_a magnis_fw-la componere_fw-la parva_fw-la to_o explain_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o unfixt_v evangelist_n by_o a_o instance_n well_o know_v in_o this_o county_n palatine_n of_o lancaster_n they_o be_v like_a to_o our_o itinerant_a preacher_n found_v by_o q._n elizabeth_n of_o famous_a memory_n these_o have_v a_o power_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o diocese_n to_o preach_v etc._n etc._n in_o any_o church_n or_o chapel_n within_o the_o say_a county_n as_o his_o lordship_n shall_v direct_v they_o or_o they_o know_v be_v necessary_a and_o convenient_a to_o the_o service_n of_o the_o reformation_n they_o have_v a_o general_a power_n to_o preach_v in_o the_o church_n in_o lancashire_n now_o if_o the_o bishop_n fix_v they_o in_o some_o rectory_n or_o vicarage_n no_o man_n will_v say_v they_o be_v degrade_v though_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o ministry_n be_v bring_v into_o a_o narrow_a compass_n than_o before_o but_o i_o have_v spend_v more_o word_n on_o this_o slight_a objection_n than_o it_o deserve_v appendix_n mr_n o._n whereas_o i_o affirm_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ought_v proper_o 5._o to_o have_v be_v render_v appoint_v or_o constitute_v and_o settle_v or_o place_v they_o pre-supposing_a at_o the_o same_o time_n their_o 64._o ordination_n he_o hence_o conclude_v i_o give_v up_o one_o of_o titus_n '_o be_v main_a power_n add_v if_o this_o text_n prove_v not_o titus_n his_o ordain_v power_n no_o one_o in_o that_o epistle_n do_v ans._n but_o mr._n o._n forget_v that_o himself_o as_o well_o as_o the_o
be_v manifest_a from_o the_o history_n as_o it_o be_v close_o lay_v together_o by_o luke_n for_o though_o he_o remember_v not_o all_o thing_n and_o every_o little_a movement_n of_o the_o apostle_n yet_o his_o history_n appear_v so_o contrive_v that_o more_o journey_n of_o his_o into_o macedonia_n can_v be_v assign_v or_o allow_v i_o do_v not_o indeed_o believe_v that_o st._n luke_n have_v set_v down_o within_o the_o time_n mention_v every_o step_v the_o apostle_n make_v by_o the_o by_o unto_o town_n and_o village_n near_o at_o hand_n while_o paul_n be_v at_o corinth_n it_o be_v to_o i_o out_o of_o controversy_n that_o he_o go_v into_o the_o neighour_a place_n preach_v the_o gospel_n though_o luke_n have_v not_o tell_v we_o so_o there_o be_v christian_n and_o a_o church_n at_o cenchrea_n rom._n 16._o 1._o where_o doubtless_o the_o apostle_n have_v teach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o luke_n omit_v this_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v senseless_a to_o think_v the_o historian_n shall_v forget_v so_o considerable_a a_o voyage_n as_o this_o of_o paul_n go_v from_o ephesus_n unto_o macedonia_n and_o leave_v timothy_n behind_o he_o but_o that_o which_o i_o further_o add_v be_v that_o i_o do_v not_o rely_v bare_o on_o st._n luke_n silence_n but_o observe_v that_o in_o his_o history_n he_o have_v leave_v no_o room_n for_o st._n paul_n place_v timothy_n at_o ephesus_n at_o any_o of_o those_o three_o time_n when_o he_o go_v into_o macedonia_n and_o if_o this_o be_v well_o prove_v as_o have_v be_v and_o shall_v be_v once_o more_o than_o another_o journey_n of_o paul_n into_o macedonia_n must_v be_v search_v for_o and_o i_o do_v believe_v may_v be_v and_o have_v be_v find_v out_o in_o order_n to_o make_v out_o all_o this_o let_v we_o first_o examine_v the_o minister_n hypothesis_n mr._n oh_o hypothesis_n be_v this_o that_o st._n paul_n at_o ephesus_n send_v 124._o timothy_n to_o macedonia_n and_o corinth_n act._n 19_o 21_o 22._o expect_v he_o back_o at_o ephesus_n 1_o cor._n 16._o 10_o 11._o that_o it_o be_v most_o likely_a timothy_n go_v back_o to_o paul_n at_o ephesus_n where_o the_o apostle_n leave_v he_o when_o he_o go_v into_o macedonia_n act._n 20._o v._n 1._o which_o as_o mr._n o._n think_v be_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o 1_o tim._n 1._o 3_o my_o business_n then_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o this_o can_v not_o be_v in_o order_n whereunto_o i_o must_v give_v here_o a_o exact_a narrative_n of_o paul_n from_o the_o time_n of_o his_o two_o year_n stay_v at_o ephesus_n unto_o his_o bid_n the_o elder_n farewell_o at_o miletus_n in_o his_o passage_n towards_o jerusalem_n from_o whence_o it_o will_v appear_v plain_o that_o paul_n can_v not_o leave_v timothy_n at_o ephesus_n at_o that_o time_n when_o he_o go_v into_o macedonia_n mention_v act._n 20._o 1._o paul_n have_v reside_v at_o ephesus_n two_o year_n act._n 19_o 10._o and_o perhaps_o more_o purpose_v in_o spirit_n to_o pass_v 〈◊〉_d macedonia_n to_o 〈◊〉_d thence_o to_o jerusalem_n and_o so_o to_o rome_n v._n 21._o some_o while_n 〈◊〉_d he_o depart_v from_o ephesus_n news_n come_v to_o he_o of_o the_o schism_n at_o corinth_n which_o occasion_v his_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n that_o the_o apostle_n send_v this_o letter_n from_o ephesus_n be_v manifest_a from_o 1_o cor._n 16._o 8_o 19_o that_o timothy_n carry_v this_o letter_n appear_v from_o chapter_n 4._o 17._o ch._n 16._o 10._o and_o that_o timothy_n at_o the_o same_o time_n have_v receive_v order_n from_o the_o apostle_n to_o go_v into_o macedonia_n may_v be_v see_v act._n 19_o 22._o st._n paul_n resolve_v to_o 〈◊〉_d at_o ephesus_n or_o in_o asia_n for_o a_o season_n that_o be_v till_o pentecost_n 1_o cor._n 16._o 8._o now_o because_o paul_n design_v to_o tarry_v in_o asia_n but_o for_o a_o season_n that_o be_v till_o 〈◊〉_d and_o because_o in_o his_o letter_n to_o the_o corinthian_n he_o promise_v to_o come_v to_o they_o short_o ch._n 4._o 19_o it_o can_v be_v doubt_v but_o timothy_n set_v forth_o on_o this_o journey_n from_o ephesus_n to_o macedonia_n and_o so_o to_o 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o spring_n about_o easter_n in_o the_o month_n of_o march_n paul_n stay_n therefore_o at_o ephesus_n after_o timothy_n departure_n be_v about_o six_o week_n the_o apostle_n 〈◊〉_d leave_v ephesus_n at_o whitsuntide_n come_v to_o troas_n 2_o cor._n 2._o 12._o thence_o unto_o macedonia_n ch_z 7._o 5._o where_o the_o long_o expect_a titus_n meet_v he_o ch_z 7._o 6._o timothy_n also_o come_v to_o he_o in_o macedonia_n and_o join_v with_o he_o in_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n ch_z 1._o 1._o paul_n and_o timothy_n have_v spend_v some_o month_n in_o macedonia_n gather_v the_o contribution_n and_o exhort_v the_o brethren_n act._n 20._o 2._o unto_o liberality_n as_o i_o suppose_v set_v forward_o for_o greece_n where_o they_o tarry_v all_o the_o three_o winter_n month_n act._n 20._o 2_o 3._o that_o be_v winter_a at_o corinth_n as_o the_o apostle_n have_v promise_v 1_o cor._n 16._o 6._o during_o his_o stay_n here_o paul_n write_v his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n ch_z 15._o 25_o 26._o timothy_n be_v then_o with_o he_o ch_z 16._o 21._o early_o in_o the_o spring_n as_o the_o apostle_n be_v about_o to_o 〈◊〉_d from_o 〈◊〉_d to_o syria_n and_o so_o to_o pass_v forward_o unto_o jerusalem_n as_o he_o have_v before_o lay_v his_o journey_n he_o sudden_o alter_v his_o purpose_n the_o occasion_n whereof_o be_v the_o jew_n lie_v in_o wait_n for_o he_o so_o he_o return_v into_o macedonia_n send_v timothy_n before_o he_o who_o nevertheless_o he_o overtake_v at_o troas_n hence_o paul_n and_o his_o company_n haste_v unto_o miletus_n where_o the_o apostle_n call_v to_o he_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n bid_v they_o farewell_o act._n 20._o 3_o 5_o 6_o 15_o 17._o the_o argument_n i_o raise_v hence_o against_o mr._n oh_o 〈◊〉_d be_v as_o follow_v 1._o here_o be_v not_o sufficient_a time_n for_o timothy_n journey_n from_o ephesus_n to_o macedonia_n so_o to_o corinth_n and_o back_o again_o to_o paul_n at_o ephesus_n before_o the_o apostle_n depart_v thence_o according_a to_o mr._n berry_n map_n corinth_n be_v distant_a from_o ephesus_n above_o 500_o 700._o italian_a or_o english_a mile_n if_o one_o travel_n by_o troas_n and_o through_o macedonia_n so_o that_o backward_o and_o forward_o timothy_n must_v have_v go_v more_o than_o a_o thousand_o mile_n in_o six_o week_n time_n beside_o cross_v the_o sea_n that_o be_v to_o say_v 30_o 38._o mile_n a_o day_n which_o be_v incredible_a especial_o if_o it_o be_v consider_v that_o he_o have_v much_o business_n to_o dispatch_v both_o in_o 〈◊〉_d and_o at_o corinth_n and_o mr._n o._n will_v not_o i_o suppose_v allow_v that_o he_o travel_v on_o the_o lords-day_n against_o this_o it_o will_v be_v object_v that_o paul_n look_v for_o timothy_n back_o at_o ephesus_n 1_o cor._n 16._o 11._o and_o that_o the_o length_n of_o the_o journey_n ought_v 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v plead_v against_o so_o good_a a_o evidence_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n ans._n i_o deny_v that_o st._n paul_n expect_v timothy_n back_o at_o ephesus_n but_o in_o macedonia_n rather_o the_o word_n be_v that_o he_o may_v come_v unto_o i_o for_o i_o look_v for_o he_o but_o whether_o at_o ephesus_n where_o he_o than_o be_v or_o in_o macedonia_n where_o he_o hope_v short_o to_o be_v be_v not_o say_v now_o paul_n have_v just_a before_o advertise_v the_o 〈◊〉_d i_o do_v pass_v through_o macedonia_n v_o 5._o and_o doubtless_o he_o have_v tell_v timothy_n as_o much_o before_o he_o depart_v from_o ephesus_n act_v 19_o beside_o when_o paul_n at_o ephesus_n write_v his_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o cor._n he_o at_o that_o very_a time_n resolve_v to_o tarry_v in_o asia_n but_o for_o a_o season_n act_n 19_o 22._o and_o to_o go_v unto_o corinth_n short_o 1_o ep._n 4._o 19_o it_o be_v then_o most_o probable_a that_o timothy_n be_v to_o meet_v paul_n in_o macedonia_n and_o that_o the_o apostle_n expect_v he_o there_o and_o there_o we_o find_v they_o together_o at_o the_o write_n of_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 2._o there_o be_v no_o occasion_n for_o timothy_n go_v back_n unto_o paul_n at_o ephesus_n and_o tarry_v there_o after_o the_o apostle_n be_v depart_v unto_o macedonia_n st._n paul_n have_v himself_o settle_v that_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o leave_v it_o in_o good_a order_n he_o have_v furnish_v it_o with_o presbyter_n and_o able_a minister_n there_o be_v among_o they_o as_o yet_o no_o wolf_n no_o viper_n no_o false_a teacher_n who_o deserve_v to_o be_v bring_v before_o timothy_n and_o rebuke_v open_o for_o their_o disorderly_a walk_n thus_o it_o be_v at_o paul_n departure_n and_o thus_o it_o continue_v some_o time_n after_o even_o when_o the_o apostle_n the_o next_o year_n call_v together_o the_o
the_o apostle_n to_o corinth_n to_o hasten_v the_o collection_n but_o the_o mischief_n be_v paul_n write_v the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n by_o titus_n from_o macedonia_n before_o winter_n before_o the_o three_o month_n mention_v act_v 20._o 3._o and_o then_o send_v he_o to_o hasten_v the_o collection_n whether_o mr._n o._n have_v do_v dr._n lightfoot_n right_a in_o this_o confuse_a account_n i_o be_o not_o concern_v to_o examine_v he_o have_v make_v this_o his_o own_o hypothesis_n and_o 〈◊〉_d i_o all_o along_o ascribe_v it_o to_o he_o well!_o let_v these_o thing_n pass_v mr._n oh_o meaning_n be_v i_o guess_v that_o paul_n go_v from_o macedonia_n into_o greece_n visit_v crete_n in_o his_o way_n and_o there_o leave_v titus_n ans._n i_o do_v not_o yet_o understand_v how_o it_o can_v be_v proper_o say_v that_o paul_n as_o he_o go_v from_o macedonia_n into_o greece_n visit_v crete_n in_o his_o way_n greece_n be_v in_o the_o way_n from_o macedonia_n to_o crete_n how_o then_o do_v he_o visit_v crete_n in_o the_o way_n as_o he_o go_v from_o macedonia_n to_o greece_n however_o sometime_o hereabout_o mr._n o._n will_v say_v between_o his_o leave_v macedonia_n and_o settle_v in_o greece_n paul_n visit_v crete_n and_o leave_v titus_n there_o which_o be_v the_o thing_n i_o now_o undertake_v to_o disprove_v but_o will_v first_o as_o my_o foundation_n tell_v the_o story_n of_o jitus_fw-la as_o exact_o as_o i_o can_v gather_v it_o from_o scripture_n paul_n at_o ephesus_n dispatch_v titus_n away_o to_o corinth_n about_o the_o collection_n as_o i_o conceive_v a_o year_n or_o more_o before_o he_o send_v timothy_n unto_o macedonia_n as_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o 2_o cor._n 8._o 6_o 10._o chap._n 9_o 2._o where_o the_o apostle_n testify_v of_o the_o corinthian_n that_o they_o be_v ready_a a_o year_n ago_o for_o this_o reason_n it_o be_v that_o paul_n look_v and_o long_v for_o titus_n return_n after_o above_o a_o year_n absence_n but_o titus_n at_o last_o come_v to_o paul_n in_o macedonia_n and_o give_v he_o a_o account_n what_o effect_n his_o first_o epistle_n have_v upon_o the_o corinthian_n 2_o cor._n 7._o 6_o 7_o etc._n etc._n as_o also_o of_o their_o willingness_n to_o contribute_v towards_o the_o relief_n of_o the_o poor_a saint_n at_o jerusalem_n chap._n 8_o 10_o 11._o chap._n 9_o 2._o hereupon_o paul_n and_o t_o mothy_a write_v the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n titus_n carry_v it_o 2_o cor._n 8._o 6_o 18._o i_o must_v add_v here_o another_o short_a account_n of_o paul_n he_o leave_v ephesus_n soon_o after_o pentecost_n and_o arrive_v let_v we_o imagine_v in_o june_n at_o philippi_n in_o macedonia_n there_o he_o give_v much_o exhortation_n act_v 20._o 2._o which_o imply_v as_o i_o gather_v that_o he_o spend_v much_o time_n in_o macedonia_n let_v we_o suppose_v he_o tarry_v there_o till_o about_o november_n then_o he_o set_v forward_o for_o greece_n where_o he_o abide_v three_o month_n v_o 3._o that_o be_v till_o february_n thence_o he_o return_v early_o in_o the_o spring_n into_o macedonia_n and_o be_v get_v as_o far_o back_o as_o philippi_n by_o easter_n v_o 6_o and_o so_o cross_v the_o sea_n into_o asia_n act._n 20._o this_o premise_a my_o argument_n against_o mr._n oh_o hypothesis_n be_v as_o follow_v 1._o here_o be_v no_o time_n that_o can_v be_v assign_v for_o paul_n sail_v unto_o crete_n and_o there_o sound_v a_o church_n if_o it_o be_v think_v that_o during_o the_o 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v allow_v for_o his_o stay_n in_o macedonia_n he_o may_v go_v to_o crete_n that_o can_v be_v grant_v because_o luke_n will_v doubtless_o have_v take_v notice_n of_o so_o considerable_a a_o enterprise_n and_o beside_o i_o do_v suppose_v paul_n be_v too_o busy_a in_o forward_v the_o collection_n and_o give_v much_o exhortation_n to_o undertake_v such_o a_o long_a voyage_n last_o luke_n plain_o say_v that_o paul_n come_v from_o macedonia_n not_o from_o crete_n into_o greece_n if_o then_o within_o the_o time_n assign_v to_o his_o stay_n in_o macedonia_n he_o go_v to_o crete_n he_o must_v have_v return_v back_o again_o first_o into_o macedonia_n and_o then_o have_v go_v into_o greece_n which_o be_v absurd_a to_o suppose_v nor_o do_v he_o sail_v out_o of_o grecce_n into_o crete_n for_o then_o luke_n can_v not_o have_v write_v that_o he_o abide_v three_o month_n in_o greece_n one_o half_a of_o which_o time_n must_v at_o least_o have_v be_v spend_v in_o that_o voyage_n to_o and_o again_o and_o in_o tarry_v there_o 2._o nor_o can_v titus_n accompany_v the_o apostle_n thither_o at_o this_o time_n titus_n be_v send_v alone_o from_o macedonia_n to_o corinth_n his_o business_n at_o corinth_n be_v to_o encourage_v and_o promote_v the_o contribution_n as_o abundant_o appear_v in_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 3._o if_o titus_n go_v along_o with_o paul_n unto_o jerusalem_n with_o the_o contribution_n as_o can_v in_o reason_n be_v deny_v how_o then_o can_v he_o be_v leave_v in_o crete_n to_o perfect_v that_o church_n and_o set_v in_o order_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v want_v i_o sure_o this_o require_v more_o than_o two_o or_o three_o month_n paul_n be_v two_o whole_a year_n at_o least_o in_o plant_v the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n but_o titus_n can_v finish_v that_o in_o crete_n it_o seem_v in_o as_o few_o month_n 4._o the_o great_a haste_n paul_n be_v in_o and_o the_o multiplicity_n of_o business_n in_o macedonia_n and_o achaia_n that_o lie_v on_o his_o hand_n and_o the_o application_n wherewith_o he_o pursue_v it_o will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o at_o this_o time_n he_o undertake_v such_o a_o great_a and_o a_o new_a work_n that_o of_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o island_n of_o crete_n at_o this_o time_n all_o other_o concernment_n of_o the_o church_n be_v lay_v aside_o and_o give_v place_n unto_o that_o of_o forward_v the_o collection_n and_o carry_v they_o to_o judea_n 5._o that_o passage_n titus_n 3._o 12._o when_o i_o shall_v send_v unto_o thou_o artemas_n or_o tychicus_n make_v haste_n to_o come_v unto_o i_o at_o nicopolis_n for_o i_o have_v determine_v there_o to_o winter_n quite_o overthrow_v mr._n oh_o o_o dr._n lightfoot'_v hypothesis_n for_o paul_n at_o that_o time_n fix_v by_o mr._n o._n neither_o intend_v nor_o do_v winter_n at_o nicopolis_n but_o at_o 〈◊〉_d as_o have_v be_v prove_v paul_n as_o yet_o have_v never_o be_v so_o far_o westward_o as_o nicopolis_n in_o epirus_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n as_o may_v be_v collect_v from_o 2_o cor._n 10._o 14_o 16_o we_o be_v come_v say_v the_o apostle_n as_o far_o as_o to_o you_o in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n but_o we_o hope_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o the_o region_n beyond_o you_o that_o be_v in_o epirus_n which_o as_o yet_o it_o seem_v he_o have_v not_o do_v how_o then_o can_v he_o intend_v to_o winter_n at_o nicopolis_n which_o imply_v that_o there_o be_v christian_n there_o already_o among_o who_o he_o will_v winter_n but_o we_o know_v of_o none_o as_o yet_o in_o those_o part_n 6._o paul_n as_o have_v be_v note_v already_o be_v in_o so_o great_a haste_n to_o go_v unto_o jerusalem_n that_o he_o will_v not_o lose_v any_o time_n no_o not_o tarry_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n at_o troas_n 〈◊〉_d a_o door_n be_v open_a 〈◊〉_d he_o how_o then_o shall_v we_o believe_v that_o he_o make_v a_o voyage_n by_o 〈◊〉_d into_o crete_n to_o plant_v a_o church_n there_o when_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v he_o have_v the_o least_o encouragement_n beforehand_o to_o expect_v any_o considerable_a success_n as_o he_o have_v at_o troas_n 7._o i_o in_o general_a before_o note_v what_o great_a business_n st._n paul_n have_v both_o in_o macedonia_n and_o at_o 〈◊〉_d which_o will_v not_o dispense_v with_o his_o absence_n from_o they_o he_o can_v not_o at_o this_o time_n take_v so_o long_a a_o journey_n as_o to_o crete_n about_o the_o conversion_n of_o that_o island_n which_o will_v require_v a_o long_a stay_n than_o he_o can_v dispense_v with_o particular_o let_v it_o be_v observe_v that_o his_o work_n at_o corinth_n be_v more_o than_o ordinary_a viz._n to_o reduce_v they_o unto_o peace_n and_o unity_n and_o order_n so_o he_o promise_v 1_o cor._n 11._o 34._o the_o rest_n will_v i_o set_v in_o order_n when_o i_o come_v whoever_o shall_v due_o weigh_v these_o thing_n with_o a_o 〈◊〉_d mind_n will_v be_v convince_v that_o st._n paul_n at_o this_o time_n of_o his_o go_v from_o ephesus_n into_o macedonia_n and_o 〈◊〉_d and_o tarry_v there_o do_v not_o can_v not_o beseech_v 〈◊〉_d to_o abide_v at_o 〈◊〉_d nor_o yet_o sail_v unto_o crete_n to_o plant_v a_o church_n there_o leave_v titus_n to_o finish_v it_o mr._n o._n here_o be_v no_o express_a proof_n that_o paul_n after_o his_o release_n from_o 126._o his_o imprisonment_n
viz._n consist_v of_o three_o distinct_a order_n of_o minister_n the_o title_n only_o of_o the_o supreme_a governor_n haply_o except_v and_o so_o continue_v after_o he_o as_o i_o say_v unto_o the_o time_n of_o ignatius_n and_o last_o have_v answer_v all_o the_o objection_n raise_v against_o our_o episcopal_a government_n by_o mr._n o._n in_o his_o book_n entitle_v a_o plea_n etc._n etc._n so_o many_o of_o they_o i_o mean_v as_o seem_v to_o carry_v any_o weight_n in_o they_o and_o concern_v the_o time_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o which_o i_o have_v confine_v myself_o hitherto_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o apostolical_a age._n after_o all_o this_o it_o remain_v that_o i_o consider_v the_o argument_n which_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n he_o be_v draw_v from_o ecclesiastical_a history_n begin_v where_o the_o scripture_n end_v and_o so_o descend_v unto_o these_o last_o age_n before_o which_o time_n episcopacy_n be_v never_o bring_v into_o question_n for_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n save_v by_o one_o arch-heretick_n aërius_n of_o who_o more_o hereafter_o my_o adversary_n indeed_o think_v he_o have_v find_v in_o old_a author_n many_o instance_n favour_v the_o presbyterian_a identity_n and_o parity_n and_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n this_o be_v now_o to_o be_v examine_v if_o my_o answer_n shall_v be_v think_v old_a i_o have_v this_o excuse_n for_o myself_o that_o the_o objection_n be_v old_a also_o and_o in_o such_o a_o case_n it_o be_v pardonable_a if_o not_o necessary_a especial_o when_o a_o adversary_n demand_v and_o even_o dun_v yea_o and_o reproach_n one_o for_o not_o have_v already_o undertake_v it_o i_o pretend_v not_o then_o to_o make_v new_a discovery_n never_o hear_v of_o before_o in_o the_o controversy_n now_o before_o we_o though_o haply_o some_o few_o thing_n not_o observe_v before_o may_v be_v here_o offer_v to_o the_o reader_n but_o to_o apply_v the_o proper_a answer_n unto_o the_o old_a objection_n wherewith_o mr._n o._n have_v endeavour_v to_o embroil_n and_o perplex_v the_o truth_n i_o will_v not_o tie_v myself_o unto_o his_o method_n which_o be_v not_o so_o well_o fit_v to_o my_o design_n it_o be_v my_o purpose_n to_o manage_v the_o dispute_n only_o 〈◊〉_d matter_n of_o fact_n which_o be_v once_o clear_v from_o countenance_v the_o presbyterian_a or_o congregational_a polity_n mr._n oh_o syllogism_n will_v and_o must_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n i_o will_v then_o digest_v and_o dispose_v all_o his_o authority_n and_o my_o reply_v to_o they_o though_o not_o exact_o for_o the_o controversy_n 〈◊〉_d not_o on_o the_o nicety_n of_o chronology_n yet_o pretty_a near_o to_o the_o order_n of_o time_n to_o which_o they_o belong_v i_o begin_v with_o the_o epistle_n of_o clemens_n romanus_n unto_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n which_o be_v the_o best_a colourable_a argument_n the_o dissenter_n do_v or_o can_v bring_v for_o themselves_o chap._n i._o of_o the_o testimony_n of_o clemens_n romanus_n the_o substance_n of_o what_o mr._n o._n argue_v from_o this_o epistle_n against_o prelatical_a episcopacy_n and_o in_o favour_n of_o presbyterian_a parity_n be_v whereas_o i_o affirm_v in_o t._n n._n clement_n seem_v to_o make_v the_o jewish_a highpriest_n the_o inferior_a priest_n and_o levite_n a_o precedent_n for_o the_o government_n of_o christian_a church_n by_o a_o bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n that_o clement_n no_o where_o say_v there_o be_v those_o three_o distinct_a 51._o officer_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n or_o that_o the_o jewish_a government_n be_v a_o pattern_n of_o the_o christian_a that_o clement_n mention_n but_o two_o order_n viz._n bishop_n and_o deacon_n that_o he_o call_v these_o bishop_n presbyter_n that_o they_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o corinth_n in_o common_a that_o he_o mention_n no_o chief_a bishop_n there_o that_o he_o exhort_v the_o corinthian_n to_o be_v subject_a unto_o their_o elder_n that_o clement_n aught_o to_o be_v expound_v by_o scripture_n philip._n 1._o 1._o and_o 1_o tim._n 3._o in_o both_o which_o place_n two_o only_a order_n be_v to_o be_v meet_v with_o that_o clement_n do_v not_o intend_v to_o affirm_v there_o be_v three_o kind_n of_o officer_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n as_o in_o the_o moysaicall_a but_o only_o that_o both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o church_n that_o be_v the_o moysaicall_a with_o three_o order_n and_o the_o christian_a with_o two_o be_v both_o establish_v by_o the_o same_o divine_a authority_n unto_o all_o which_o it_o be_v reply_v 1._o i_o ready_o grant_v clement_n no_o where_o express_o affirm_v there_o be_v three_o distinct_a order_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n or_o that_o the_o high-priest_n priest_n and_o levite_n in_o the_o jewish_a church_n be_v the_o pattern_n of_o bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n in_o the_o christian._n thus_o much_o be_v grant_v nevertheless_o what_o i_o cite_v he_o for_o may_v be_v true_a and_o be_v so_o sc_n that_o he_o seem_v to_o make_v the_o jewish_a government_n the_o pattern_n of_o the_o christian_a as_o we_o be_v wont_n to_o argue_v from_o he_o compare_v the_o one_o with_o the_o other_o one_o will_v think_v this_o join_v with_o jerom_n testimony_n cite_v with_o it_o in_o t._n n._n pag._n 1._o be_v sufficient_a to_o warrant_v i_o thus_o modest_o to_o 〈◊〉_d that_o clement_n seem_v to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o jewish_a government_n a_o pattern_n of_o the_o christian_a which_o other_o before_o i_o have_v do_v as_o dr._n h._n in_o his_o dissertation_n and_o dr._n 〈◊〉_d cod._n can._n etc._n etc._n l._n 2._o e._n 11._o but_o mr._n mede_n deserve_v particular_o to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o who_o have_v more_o than_o once_o declare_v his_o judgement_n in_o this_o matter_n let_v we_o hear_v he_o teach_v we_o that_o in_o thing_n for_o which_o we_o find_v no_o rule_n give_v in_o the_o 435._o new_a testament_n there_o we_o be_v refer_v and_o leave_v to_o the_o analogy_n of_o the_o old_a he_o instance_n in_o st._n paul_n argue_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n 1_o cor._n 9_o 13_o 14_o in_o infant_n baptism_n in_o hallow_v the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n in_o the_o three_o order_n bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n assert_v by_o jerom_n to_o be_v derive_v from_o 〈◊〉_d his_o son_n and_o the_o levite_n and_o last_o in_o this_o passage_n of_o st._n clement_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n once_o more_o he_o expound_v those_o word_n in_o clemens_n romanus_n to_o the_o corinthian_n we_o ought_v to_o do_v all_o 413._o thing_n in_o order_n as_o the_o lord_n have_v command_v put_v the_o question_n to_o himself_o thus_o where_o have_v the_o lord_n command_v this_o and_o answer_v himself_o thus_o in_o the_o analogy_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n now_o clement_n in_o the_o next_o follow_v part_n of_o his_o epistle_n treat_v in_o general_a of_o the_o time_n when_o the_o christian_a ministration_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v the_o place_n where_o and_o the_o person_n by_o who_o if_o then_o the_o analogy_n of_o the_o law_n be_v a_o divine_a commission_n unto_o the_o christian_n if_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o jew_n a_o precedent_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n if_o the_o jewish_a sabbath_n of_o the_o christian_a lord's-day_n why_o not_o the_o levitical_a three_o order_n of_o the_o christian_a 〈◊〉_d priest_n and_o deacon_n but_o that_o which_o be_v of_o most_o moment_n be_v that_o many_o other_o father_n follow_v clement_n as_o jerom_n synesius_n cyprian_n and_o firmilianus_n of_o who_o i_o have_v speak_v elsewhere_o do_v not_o forget_v to_o allude_v or_o appeal_v to_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o three_o order_n of_o church-officer_n among_o the_o christian_n st._n cyprian_n say_v he_o have_v a_o divine_a law_n to_o punish_v oxon._n his_o rebellious_a deacon_n quote_v deut._n 17._o 12._o numb_a 16._o 1._o here_o he_o think_v himself_o invest_v with_o the_o same_o authority_n as_o aaron_n be_v and_o through_o aaron_n to_o have_v receive_v it_o from_o god_n the_o like_a we_o meet_v with_o in_o several_a other_o epistle_n and_o indeed_o the_o name_n sacerdos_n 73._o sacerdotium_fw-la altar_n sacrificium_fw-la oblationes_fw-la etc._n etc._n so_o familiar_o use_v by_o the_o ancient_n and_o by_o our_o clement_a himself_n to_o express_v the_o christian_a officer_n and_o office_n imply_v as_o much_o it_o may_v then_o with_o reason_n be_v suppose_v that_o clement_n intend_v the_o same_o 2._o as_o i_o acknowledge_v clement_n do_v not_o totidem_fw-la verbis_fw-la assert_v the_o order_n so_o i_o observe_v that_o though_o he_o express_o mention_n two_o only_o yet_o he_o affirm_v no_o where_o that_o there_o be_v two_o only_a kind_n of_o officer_n in_o the_o church_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o no_o more_o or_o thus_o though_o he_o mention_n two_o only_a yet_o he_o deny_v not_o express_o but_o that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o three_o 3._o i_o join_v issue_n with_o mr._n o._n that_o clement_n ought_v to_o be_v
expound_v by_o the_o scripture_n but_o sure_o not_o by_o the_o two_o place_n only_o which_o he_o have_v allege_v all_o the_o rest_n be_v lay_v aside_o the_o epistle_n then_o of_o clement_n must_v be_v expound_v by_o the_o whole_a scripture_n and_o what_o intimation_n of_o three_o order_n be_v any_o where_o therein_o to_o be_v find_v this_o have_v be_v do_v already_o and_o need_v not_o be_v draw_v in_o here_o again_o to_o lengthen_v and_o confound_v the_o argument_n only_o thus_o brief_o to_o the_o two_o passage_n adduce_v by_o mr._n o._n though_o st._n paul_n philip._n 1._o 1._o mention_n bishop_n and_o deacon_n only_o and_o no_o third_n superior_a officer_n in_o that_o church_n yet_o chap._n 2._o 25._o 〈◊〉_d call_v epaphroditus_n by_o who_o he_o send_v this_o epistle_n the_o apostle_n of_o the_o philippian_n and_o though_o 1_o tim._n 3._o ch_n he_o name_v bishop_n and_o deacon_n only_o and_o no_o three_o officer_n yet_o as_o i_o hope_v have_v be_v sufficient_o make_v out_o he_o have_v constitute_v timothy_n ruler_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o particular_o of_o the_o elder_n there_o so_o that_o there_o be_v at_o philippi_n three_o order_n a_o apostle_n bishop_n or_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n likewise_o at_o ephesus_n timothy_n the_o ruler_n of_o that_o church_n and_o bishop_n or_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n and_o the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v of_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n when_o clement_n write_v to_o they_o if_o we_o will_v suffer_v ourselves_o to_o be_v guide_v by_o scripture_n and_o reason_n 4._o that_o clement_n exhort_v the_o corinthian_n to_o be_v subject_a unto_o the_o presbyter_n be_v certain_a but_o so_o do_v ignatius_n require_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v subject_a to_o their_o presbyter_n though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o urge_v the_o christian_n and_o special_o the_o presbyter_n themselves_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n the_o flock_n may_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o presbyter_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n they_o and_o the_o presbyter_n ought_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n again_o that_o the_o presbyter_n govern_v the_o church_n in_o common_a be_v not_o question_v but_o that_o they_o do_v so_o without_o a_o bishop_n be_v no_o where_o express_o say_v last_o that_o clement_n express_o mention_n no_o chief_a bishop_n at_o 〈◊〉_d i_o own_o especial_o not_o by_o the_o name_n bishop_n but_o still_o he_o seem_v to_o speak_v of_o a_o order_n of_o church-officer_n superior_a to_o and_o distinct_a from_o presbyter_n page_z the_o jun._n second_o commend_v the_o peaceable_a behaviour_n of_o the_o corinthian_n in_o time_n 〈◊〉_d he_o write_v that_o they_o have_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d subject_a to_o 〈◊〉_d ruler_n and_o give_v convenient_a honour_n unto_o the_o presbyter_n and_o again_o p._n 〈◊〉_d let_v we_o worship_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n let_v we_o reverence_v our_o governor_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d let_v we_o honour_v our_o presbyter_n one_o will_v think_v here_o be_v sufficient_a intimation_n of_o a_o order_n of_o church_n officer_n superior_a unto_o presbyter_n and_o distinct_a from_o they_o 5._o clement_n be_v himself_o bishop_n or_o supreme_a ruler_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n at_o rome_n be_v as_o it_o be_v think_v the_o same_o person_n that_o we_o read_v of_o philip._n 4._o 3._o now_o it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o likely_a that_o clement_n a_o person_n of_o unquestionable_a piety_n and_o integrity_n be_v a_o prelatical_a bishop_n himself_o at_o rome_n shall_v approve_v or_o countenance_v the_o presbyterian_a parity_n at_o 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o those_o two_o apostolical_a church_n shall_v thus_o wide_o differ_v in_o their_o form_n of_o government_n 6._o it_o may_v deserve_v our_o observation_n what_o clement_n write_v towards_o the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o epistle_n p._n 69._o thus_o whoever_o among_o you_o be_v generous_a and_o charitable_n let_v he_o resolve_v thus_o if_o the_o sedition_n contention_n and_o schism_n be_v rise_v on_o my_o account_n i_o will_v be_v go_v wherever_o you_o will_v and_o whatever_o the_o people_n require_v that_o i_o will_v do_v only_o let_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o presbyter_n set_v over_o they_o live_v in_o peace_n methinks_v the_o author_n in_o these_o word_n plain_o enough_o distinguish_n between_o that_o generous_a person_n first_o speak_v of_o and_o a_o considerable_a part_n of_o the_o presbyter_n immediate_o after_o mention_v separately_z from_o he_o this_o generous_a person_n be_v it_o seem_v settle_v in_o some_o post_n or_o office_n by_o one_o party_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d or_o atlea_v continue_v in_o it_o against_o the_o mind_n and_o inclination_n of_o the_o rest._n from_o hence_o spring_v the_o quarrel_n and_o schism_n among_o '_o they_o now_o what_o office_n can_v this_o be_v but_o that_o of_o the_o prelatical_a bishop_n he_o can_v not_o be_v a_o mere_a presbyter_n for_o he_o be_v plain_o distinguish_v from_o they_o and_o beside_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v imagine_v that_o one_o common_a presbyter_n equal_a with_o the_o rest_n shall_v have_v be_v the_o occasion_n of_o such_o a_o dangerous_a schism_n or_o that_o his_o absence_n shall_v immediate_o put_v a_o end_n to_o it_o as_o it_o be_v here_o imply_v nor_o will_v any_o one_o i_o believe_v say_v that_o he_o be_v a_o deacon_n much_o less_o a_o ordinary_a believer_n he_o be_v then_o as_o i_o conceive_v the_o prelate_n of_o that_o church_n but_o not_o acceptable_a to_o one_o party_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o on_o this_o occasion_n the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n be_v disturb_v clement_n not_o intermeddle_v among_o they_o as_o to_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o cause_n advise_v this_o generous_a person_n out_o of_o charity_n and_o for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n to_o abdicate_v and_o depart_v from_o his_o office_n to_o the_o end_n some_o other_o succeed_v with_o the_o universal_a consent_n of_o the_o corinthian_n by_o this_o mean_v a_o period_n may_v be_v put_v unto_o their_o division_n in_o further_a proof_n of_o this_o i_o offer_v unto_o consideration_n what_o i_o long_o since_o write_v in_o my_o clement_n upon_o the_o margin_n but_o be_v not_o so_o happy_a as_o to_o refer_v to_o the_o author_n whence_o i_o have_v take_v that_o note_n it_o be_v this_o that_o from_o the_o passage_n of_o clement_n epistle_n just_a before_o set_v down_o at_o length_n 〈◊〉_d and_o other_o after_o he_o conjecture_n that_o clement_n be_v name_v by_o peter_n to_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o apostle_n immediate_a successor_n but_o refuse_v it_o for_o a_o like_a reason_n that_o he_o here_o exhort_v the_o generous_a person_n at_o corinth_n to_o lay_v down_o his_o ephes._n office_n now_o it_o be_v very_o proper_a for_o clement_n to_o urge_v his_o own_o reason_n and_o example_n and_o especial_o since_o his_o modesty_n and_o condescension_n gain_v he_o afterward_o the_o affection_n of_o that_o church_n and_o at_o length_n advance_v he_o unto_o the_o bishopric_n of_o rome_n the_o like_a he_o hint_n unto_o this_o generous_a person_n as_o a_o motive_n to_o he_o to_o resign_v in_o the_o next_o period_n he_o say_v clement_n who_o shall_v do_v thus_o shall_v procure_v to_o himself_o great_a glory_n in_o the_o lord_n and_o every_o place_n every_o church_n will_v receive_v he_o the_o passage_n in_o epiphanius_n whereof_o i_o speak_v be_v in_o english_a as_o advers._fw-la follow_v peter_n and_o paul_n be_v both_o the_o first_o apostle_n and_o bishop_n of_o rome_n than_o linus_n afterward_o cletus_n and_o next_o he_o paris_n clement_n contemporary_a of_o peter_n and_o paul_n nor_o let_v any_o one_o wonder_n that_o other_o before_o clement_n receive_v the_o episcopacy_n from_o the_o apostle_n see_v clement_n be_v their_o contemporary_a whether_o he_o receive_v ordination_n to_o the_o episcopacy_n and_o decline_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n whilst_o they_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n survive_v for_o he_o say_v in_o one_o of_o his_o epistle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o depart_v i_o be_o go_v let_v the_o people_n of_o god_n abide_v in_o peace_n design_v this_o for_o other_o good_a and_o advantage_n or_o whither_o etc._n etc._n it_o may_v perhaps_o be_v object_v that_o clement_n ascribe_v not_o the_o corinthian_a schism_n to_o that_o one_o generous_a person_n only_o but_o to_o some_o misunderstanding_n between_o the_o people_n and_o the_o presbyter_n some_o of_o the_o latter_a be_v not_o suffer_v to_o continue_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o ministry_n any_o long_o at_o corinth_n so_o it_o be_v intimate_v pag._n 58._o in_o these_o word_n it_o will_v be_v no_o little_a sin_n in_o we_o to_o cast_v off_o those_o presbyter_n or_o bishop_n who_o have_v discharge_v the_o office_n of_o their_o ministry_n 〈◊〉_d and_o without_o blame_n for_o we_o see_v that_o they_o have_v remove_v some_o presbyter_n who_o conversation_n be_v laudable_a and_o
short_a period_n express_v himself_o both_o way_n as_o well_o in_o the_o bipartite_a as_o in_o the_o tripartite_a form_n therefore_o he_o must_v sure_o be_v understand_v to_o respect_v one_o and_o the_o same_o age_n in_o the_o same_o sentence_n if_o he_o have_v therein_o a_o eye_n unto_o the_o apostolical_a age_n blundel_n distinction_n be_v of_o no_o advantage_n to_o our_o adversary_n still_o upon_o that_o supposition_n there_o be_v three_o order_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n if_o he_o refer_v to_o his_o own_o age_n then_o although_o he_o comprehend_v they_o in_o two_o word_n yet_o be_v there_o three_o order_n of_o minister_n in_o the_o church_n 3._o ignatius_n can_v with_o no_o colour_n of_o reason_n be_v suppose_v to_o look_v to_o any_o other_o than_o the_o apostolical_a age_n wherein_o he_o live_v a_o great_a while_n and_o be_v martyr_a but_o about_o ten_o year_n after_o the_o apostle_n st._n john_n his_o three_o order_n therefore_o bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n be_v not_o strict_o speak_v of_o ecclesiastical_a but_o apostolical_a constitution_n by_o consequence_n blundel_n device_n make_v nothing_o for_o the_o identity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n 4._o it_o no_o manner_n of_o way_n relieve_v our_o adversary_n from_o our_o argument_n ground_v on_o the_o scripture_n which_o use_v the_o dichotomy_n and_o in_o it_o comprehend_v the_o three_o jewish_a order_n the_o high-priest_n the_o second_o priest_n and_o the_o levite_n in_o conformity_n whereunto_o the_o father_n may_v be_v think_v to_o have_v sum_v up_o the_o christian_a minister_n in_o two_o word_n also_o if_o it_o be_v ask_v with_o what_o congruity_n can_v the_o father_n so_o often_o fall_v into_o this_o dichotomy_n and_o yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n believe_v the_o three_o order_n to_o be_v by_o apostolical_a constitution_n the_o answer_n be_v easy_a except_o the_o rule_v part_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o church_n government_n and_o discipline_n otherwise_o the_o presbyter_n be_v and_o still_o be_v among_o we_o as_o it_o be_v equal_a to_o bishop_n sc_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n wherein_o they_o officiate_v as_o effectual_o as_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o for_o which_o reason_n they_o may_v be_v account_v the_o bishop_n peer_n and_o both_o not_o unfit_o call_v by_o one_o common_a name_n even_o as_o i_o before_o observe_v from_o st._n chrysoftom_n presbyter_n be_v comprehend_v in_o deacon_n as_o agree_v in_o some_o thing_n common_a to_o both_o 8._o and_o in_o the_o last_o place_n that_o which_o i_o insist_v and_o chief_o rely_v upon_o as_o a_o just_a answer_n unto_o the_o argument_n ground_v on_o st._n clement_n epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n be_v this_o that_o it_o be_v draw_v only_o from_o a_o negative_a clement_n not_o express_o mention_v the_o three_o distinct_a order_n which_o i_o contend_v be_v unconcluding_a i_o have_v oft_o enough_o produce_v instance_n out_o of_o scripture_n of_o the_o apostle_n not_o constant_o remember_v all_o the_o church-officer_n in_o their_o epistle_n and_o frequent_o mention_v none_o at_o all_o to_o keep_v myself_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o my_o present_a province_n the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n ignatius_n who_o great_a design_n in_o all_o his_o other_o epistle_n be_v to_o assert_v and_o vindicate_v the_o three_o order_n of_o bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n pass_v they_o all_o over_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n but_o it_o be_v no_o good_a consequence_n that_o therefore_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o in_o it_o so_o much_o as_o a_o presbyter_n or_o a_o deacon_n it_o may_v far_o be_v consider_v that_o much_o more_o a_o argument_n deduce_v from_o a_o author_n silence_n can_v be_v of_o no_o force_n when_o there_o be_v other_o positive_a and_o express_v witness_n attest_v the_o truth_n bring_v into_o question_n if_o a_o witness_n depose_v that_o john_n and_o richard_n be_v engage_v in_o the_o murder_n of_o robert_n this_o shall_v not_o quit_v thomas_n if_o another_o witness_n swear_v he_o also_o have_v a_o hand_n in_o the_o assassination_n clement_n mention_n bishop_n or_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n not_o so_o much_o as_o intimate_v that_o there_o be_v a_o prelate_n at_o corinth_n let_v that_o now_o be_v suppose_v but_o his_o contemporary_a ignatius_n have_v again_o and_o again_o testify_v that_o there_o be_v bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n in_o several_a church_n to_o which_o he_o write_v and_o particular_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n that_o there_o be_v these_o three_o distinct-officer_n throughout_o the_o world_n as_o far_o as_o he_o know_v and_o by_o consequence_n at_o corinth_n though_o clement_n for_o reason_n best_o know_v unto_o himself_o think_v not_o fit_a to_o mention_v the_o prelate_n nor_o can_v it_o with_o reason_n be_v plead_v that_o ignatius_n be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o government_n of_o this_o apostolical_a church_n of_o corinth_n as_o i_o suppose_v it_o will_v be_v grant_v from_o the_o whole_a than_o i_o gather_v that_o clement_n silence_n be_v no_o good_a proof_n that_o there_o be_v no_o prelatical_a bishop_n at_o corinth_n because_o his_o contemporary_a be_v positive_a there_o be_v which_o now_o bring_v i_o to_o the_o testimony_n of_o ignatim_o in_o this_o controversy_n chap._n ii_o ignatius_n his_o testimony_n ignatius_n clement_n contemporary_a the_o disciple_n and_o friend_n of_o st._n john_n the_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n of_o jesus_n christ_n have_v so_o plain_o so_o full_o and_o so_o often_o in_o his_o epistle_n give_v in_o his_o testimony_n unto_o the_o three_o distinct_a order_n of_o church-officer_n bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n and_o i_o have_v so_o exact_o and_o at_o length_n cite_v his_o word_n in_o t._n n._n p._n 59_o 60_o 67_o 68_o 69_o 70_o 71_o 72_o and_o 73._o that_o one_o may_v just_o wonder_v this_o truth_n shall_v any_o long_o be_v call_v into_o question_n after_o so_o clear_a evidence_n produce_v mr._n o._n have_v sundry_a thing_n to_o throw_v in_o our_o way_n which_o i_o must_v consider_v in_o their_o order_n and_o remove_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a 1._o mr._n o._n will_v bring_v the_o credit_n of_o these_o epistle_n into_o 110._o suspicion_n as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o agree_v among_o the_o learned_a whether_o they_o be_v genuine_a that_o daille_n endeavour_v to_o prove_v they_o spurious_a and_o la_fw-fr roque_n with_o great_a judgement_n reply_v unto_o the_o learned_a bp._n of_o chester_n dr._n pearson_n who_o have_v endeavour_v to_o confute_v mounseur_fw-fr daille_n in_o his_o vindiciae_fw-la epist_n s._n ignatii_n ans._n the_o genuineness_n of_o these_o epistle_n be_v never_o question_v by_o any_o learned_a man_n that_o i_o know_v of_o since_o dr._n pearson_n publish_v his_o vindication_n of_o they_o save_v by_o mounseur_fw-fr la_fw-fr roque_n who_o attempt_v to_o support_v mounseur_fw-fr daille_n but_o without_o success_n i_o never_o hear_v he_o gain_v any_o one_o proselyte_n it_o be_v confess_v i_o have_v not_o read_v that_o french_a gentleman_n book_n the_o reason_n whereof_o be_v that_o when_o dr._n pearson_n be_v by_o his_o friend_n deal_v with_o to_o make_v a_o reply_n to_o la_fw-fr roque_n the_o wise_a man_n answer_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o it_o that_o la_fw-fr roque_n have_v advance_v nothing_o of_o moment_n against_o his_o vindiciae_fw-la and_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o st._n ignatius_n epistle_n remain_v still_o unquestionable_a this_o i_o remember_v very_o well_o be_v the_o common_a discourse_n among_o we_o many_o year_n ago_o in_o the_o university_n of_o cambridge_n and_o the_o event_n confirm_v it_o no_o body_n now_o dare_v to_o deny_v they_o not_o the_o dissenter_n themselves_o though_o sometime_o in_o general_n they_o will_v have_v they_o pass_v for_o uncertain_a it_o be_v not_o intend_v hereby_o to_o disparage_v mounseur_fw-fr la_fw-fr roque_n in_o the_o least_o his_o misfortune_n be_v that_o he_o undertake_v the_o defence_n of_o a_o ill_a cause_n against_o a_o potent_a adversary_n in_o such_o a_o case_n the_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o world_n must_v be_v force_v to_o retire_v with_o dishonour_n and_o disappointment_n but_o for_o mr._n o._n to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o agree_v among_o the_o learned_a etc._n etc._n when_o one_o only_o learned_a man_n be_v to_o be_v find_v that_o stand_v out_o be_v too_o much_o i_o think_v to_o offer_v unto_o the_o world_n as_o if_o the_o balance_n be_v even_o and_o the_o learned_a equal_o divide_v about_o the_o genuineness_n of_o ignatius_n epistle_n i_o be_o persuade_v mr._n o._n himself_o believe_v what_o bishop_n pearson_n have_v prove_v they_o to_o be_v though_o he_o will_v 〈◊〉_d that_o they_o be_v yet_o doubtful_a but_o enough_o of_o this_o 2._o mr._n o._n further_o contend_v there_o be_v strong_a presumption_n 29._o that_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n consist_v of_o no_o more_o member_n than_o can_v ordinary_o meet_v in_o one_o place_n and_o have_v but_o one_o altar_n
present_a without_o one_o yet_o sure_o they_o have_v not_o lose_v all_o their_o presbyter_n and_o if_o the_o church_n of_o syria_n retain_v yet_o her_o presbyter_n as_o by_o the_o quiet_a that_o church_n even_o then_o have_v must_v be_v think_v they_o 45._o may_v easy_o have_v make_v to_o themselves_o a_o chief_a pastor_n or_o moderator_n out_o of_o their_o remain_a number_n and_o not_o be_v destitute_a of_o a_o shepherd_n as_o ignatius_n bewail_v whole_a loss_n or_o absence_n at_o present_a can_v only_o be_v supply_v by_o the_o chief_a shepherd_n and_o bishop_n of_o their_o soul_n here_o by_o the_o way_n the_o conceit_n of_o a_o temporary_a moderator_n must_v be_v throw_v out_o of_o door_n ignatius_n be_v bishop_n of_o syria_n for_o life_n nor_o can_v they_o have_v another_o whilst_o he_o be_v live_v though_o absent_a in_o bond_n this_o be_v the_o reason_n he_o so_o passionate_o resent_v the_o unhappiness_n of_o that_o church_n of_o syria_n that_o they_o be_v force_v to_o be_v without_o a_o bishop_n which_o they_o need_v not_o to_o have_v be_v if_o another_o 〈◊〉_d pastor_n and_o moderator_n may_v have_v be_v constitute_v in_o his_o absence_n and_o life-time_n which_o by_o the_o presbyterian_a principle_n may_v easy_o have_v be_v do_v 6._o ignatius_n over_o and_o over_o prescribe_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v do_v nothing_o without_o the_o bishop_n and_o not_o only_o so_o in_o these_o general_n term_n which_o haply_o will_v be_v understand_v of_o his_o preside_v in_o presbytery_n and_o moderate_v in_o their_o debate_n for_o order_n sake_n but_o also_o in_o particular_a that_o marriage_n shall_v not_o be_v celebrate_v the_o lord's-supper_n shall_v not_o be_v administer_v nor_o baptism_n give_v unto_o believer_n without_o he_o without_o his_o appointment_n and_o approbation_n this_o show_v that_o ignatius_n his_o bishop_n be_v not_o only_o the_o precedent_n in_o their_o synod_n and_o deliberation_n but_o the_o supreme_a director_n of_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o law_n and_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n without_o who_o leave_n the_o 〈◊〉_d can_v not_o marry_v nor_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n it_o be_v all_o we_o desire_v of_o the_o dissenter_n if_o we_o may_v prevail_v with_o they_o that_o they_o will_v not_o presume_v to_o do_v any_o thing_n without_o the_o bishop_n and_o particular_o not_o to_o ordain_v presbyter_n last_o although_o he_o often_o call_v the_o presbytery_n the_o council_n of_o god_n and_o college_n of_o the_o apostle_n yet_o to_o keep_v alibi_fw-la up_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n he_o then_o at_o the_o same_o time_n resemble_v he_o unto_o god_n himself_o or_o to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n if_o then_o god_n the_o father_n be_v superior_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o if_o jesus_n christ_n must_v be_v confess_v great_a than_o the_o council_n of_o the_o apostle_n so_o be_v the_o bishop_n than_o the_o presbyter_n or_o presbytery_n in_o the_o opinion_n of_o this_o father_n and_o according_a to_o the_o analogy_n and_o resemblance_n in_o this_o author_n from_o the_o whole_a it_o be_v i_o hope_v clear_a to_o a_o demonstration_n that_o ignatius_n his_o bishop_n be_v more_o than_o what_o mr._n o._n mean_n by_o chief_a pastor_n or_o moderator_n in_o their_o assemble_v pro_fw-la tempore_fw-la they_o be_v prelatical_a and_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o their_o office_n superior_a to_o presbyter_n it_o remain_v that_o we_o show_v they_o be_v diocesan_n bishop_n that_o be_v have_v the_o oversight_n of_o more_o than_o one_o congregation_n for_o this_o be_v another_o objection_n mr._n o._n have_v raise_v against_o our_o establish_a diocesan_n episcopacy_n for_o proof_n hereof_o let_v it_o be_v remember_v 1._o that_o if_o there_o be_v not_o in_o ignatius_n his_o time_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la diocesan_n bishop_n they_o be_v at_o least_o form_v and_o design_v for_o such_o when_o ever_o the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n shall_v be_v increase_v it_o have_v already_o be_v observe_v that_o titus_n leave_v by_o st._n paul_n in_o crete_n to_o govern_v that_o church_n be_v particular_o direct_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n in_o all_o or_o as_o many_o city_n as_o shall_v afterward_o receive_v the_o faith_n or_o in_o order_n to_o convert_v more_o of_o '_o they_o i_o gather_v hence_o that_o titus_n be_v intend_v to_o be_v the_o ruler_n of_o all_o these_o congregation_n let_v mr._n o._n make_v he_o a_o bishop_n or_o a_o archbishop_n it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o i_o he_o be_v constitute_v to_o be_v ruler_n over_o many_o city_n and_o congregation_n thus_o at_o least_o it_o be_v i_o conceive_v in_o these_o asiatic_a church_n to_o who_o ignatius_n write_v as_o will_v hence_o appear_v viz._n that_o every_o of_o these_o church_n be_v furnish_v with_o a_o prelatical_a bishop_n with_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n under_o he_o to_o what_o purpose_n else_o so_o many_o presbyter_n and_o such_o distinct_a kind_n of_o order_n one_o or_o two_o at_o most_o may_v have_v suffice_v they_o at_o present_a especial_o if_o it_o be_v consider_v that_o the_o christian_n at_o that_o time_n be_v not_o in_o so_o flourish_v a_o condition_n as_o to_o be_v able_a to_o maintain_v so_o many_o church-officer_n for_o one_o congregation_n nor_o be_v there_o business_n enough_o to_o employ_v they_o all_o in_o the_o service_n of_o that_o one_o congregation_n it_o be_v then_o most_o rational_a to_o believe_v that_o so_o many_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n be_v provide_v at_o least_o for_o carry_v on_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o infidel_n and_o multiply_v they_o into_o several_a congregation_n but_o if_o every_o congregation_n must_v have_v have_v or_o be_v intend_v to_o have_v a_o bishop_n we_o shall_v doubtléss_v have_v read_v of_o bishop_n ex_fw-la gr_n at_o ephesus_n as_o well_o as_o presbyter_n in_o the_o plural_a let_v we_o then_o suppose_v what_o be_v most_o reasonable_a to_o admit_v that_o some_o at_o least_o of_o these_o church_n have_v be_v in_o ignatius_n time_n multiply_v into_o several_a congregation_n yet_o still_o there_o be_v but_o one_o bishop_n i_o do_v not_o remember_v that_o ever_o we_o read_v of_o two_o bishop_n of_o any_o one_o city_n in_o all_o antiquity_n except_v when_o the_o christian_n of_o that_o city_n be_v harrass_v and_o disturb_v with_o schism_n and_o division_n now_o who_o can_v imagine_v that_o no_o one_o city_n in_o the_o world_n even_o in_o ignatius_n time_n 97._o ever_o have_v more_o believer_n in_o and_o near_o it_o than_o do_v assemble_v for_o divine_a worship_n in_o one_o place_n especial_o in_o those_o time_n of_o persecution_n when_o the_o christian_n skulk_v and_o can_v not_o with_o safety_n meet_v in_o great_a number_n nor_o have_v room_n capacious_a enough_o and_o therefore_o canton_v themselves_o into_o several_a meeting_n let_v any_o one_o put_v all_o these_o thing_n together_o and_o impartial_o weigh_v they_o and_o he_o will_v not_o easy_o grant_v that_o paradox_n that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o than_o one_o single_a congregation_n in_o any_o city_n nor_o will_v he_o make_v any_o scruple_n to_o believe_v that_o ignatius_n bishop_n be_v at_o least_o design_v to_o preside_v over_o several_a presbyter_n and_o congregation_n last_o the_o negative_a that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o congregation_n in_o any_o of_o they_o have_v not_o be_v prove_v neither_o can_v by_o any_o express_a testimony_n i_o conćeive_v it_o behoove_v our_o dissenter_n to_o make_v this_o out_o before_o they_o can_v thorough_o justify_v their_o congregational_a church_n but_o let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o particular_n and_o therefore_o 2._o note_v that_o ignatius_n style_v himself_o bishop_n of_o syria_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n now_o how_o large_a a_o tract_n syria_n contain_v i_o need_v not_o say_v neither_o will_v i_o affirm_v he_o be_v bishop_n of_o all_o syria_n take_v in_o its_o utmost_a latitude_n but_o see_v he_o call_v himself_o and_o be_v bishop_n of_o syria_n it_o be_v more_o than_o of_o the_o bare_a city_n antioch_n as_o any_o one_o will_v confess_v his_o episcopal_a power_n must_v have_v extend_v unto_o some_o considerable_a compass_n of_o ground_n in_o the_o adjacent_a part_n of_o the_o country_n else_o it_o have_v be_v foolish_a to_o have_v pretend_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o syria_n when_o he_o be_v only_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n and_o of_o one_o congregation_n there_o will_v any_o one_o then_o suffer_v himself_o to_o believe_v 〈◊〉_d be_v bishop_n but_o of_o one_o congregation_n only_o it_o can_v enter_v into_o my_o head_n so_o much_o as_o to_o think_v it_o possible_a because_o it_o must_v be_v suppose_v there_o be_v congregation_n in_o syria_n as_o well_o as_o at_o antioch_n in_o country_n as_o 〈◊〉_d as_o city_n 3._o i_o reckon_v also_o that_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n consist_v of_o more_o than_o one_o congregation_n and_o my_o reason_n be_v 1._o as_o i_o argue_v in_o t._n n._n p._n 145._o
dislike_v the_o order_n that_o they_o find_v in_o the_o british_a church_n as_o be_v episcopal_a though_o derive_v from_o the_o monastery_n of_o hy._n to_o this_o mr._n o._n except_v that_o if_o by_o british_a bishop_n be_v mean_v the_o 156._o church_n of_o south_n britain_n it_o be_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n as_o we_o observe_v before_o ans._n nothing_o be_v more_o plain_a than_o that_o my_o lord_n bishop_n mean_v the_o church_n of_o south_n britain_n whatever_o mr._n o._n observe_v before_o be_v not_o material_a but_o my_o lord_n bishop_n observation_n be_v manifest_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o if_o the_o roman_n do_v not_o dislike_v the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n of_o south_n britain_n they_o can_v not_o dislike_v the_o order_n of_o hylas_n because_o the_o south_n britain_n derive_v their_o order_n from_o hylas_n and_o doubtless_o be_v the_o same_o and_o the_o reason_n they_o dislike_v neither_o be_v because_o they_o be_v episcopal_a as_o be_v the_o roman_n and_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o mr._n o._n add_v if_o the_o order_n 〈◊〉_d at_o hylas_n be_v intend_v as_o not_o dislike_v by_o the_o roman_n yet_o say_v he_o the_o roman_n be_v not_o so_o ignorant_a of_o the_o privilege_n of_o abbot_n as_o to_o dislike_v their_o ordination_n which_o be_v allow_v by_o that_o church_n decret_n greg._n abbas_n si_fw-la sit_fw-la presbyter_n confer_v potest_fw-la ordinem_fw-la clericalem_fw-la ans._n ordo_fw-la clericalis_fw-la may_v possible_o here_o 〈◊〉_d neither_o the_o episcopal_a nor_o presbyterial_a nor_o the_o diaconal_a order_n but_o the_o inferior_a order_n only_o such_o as_o the_o subdeacon_n acoluthist_n exorcist_n psalmist_n lector_n and_o doorkeeper_n but_o that_o the_o episcopal_a order_n be_v not_o mean_v be_v to_o i_o past_o dispute_n for_o the_o roman_n never_o allow_v a_o abbot_n presbyter_n to_o ordain_v a_o bishop_n that_o i_o hear_v of_o second_o if_o this_o privilege_n be_v allow_v by_o the_o roman_a pontiff_n to_o the_o presbyter_n abbot_n it_o be_v allow_v to_o such_o of_o they_o only_o who_o it_o be_v likely_a own_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o roman_a see_n but_o not_o unto_o those_o who_o refuse_v subjection_n to_o it_o as_o do_v the_o abbot_n of_o hylas_n mr._n o._n know_v very_o well_o this_o privilege_n then_o whatever_o it_o be_v can_v not_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o roman_n not_o dislke_a the_o foresay_a order_n three_o the_o decretal_n mention_v be_v make_v or_o put_v together_o by_o gregory_n the_o nine_o pope_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o thirteen_o century_n about_o 709_o year_n after_o these_o abbot_n of_o hylas_n almost_o as_o many_o after_o austin_n the_o monk_n and_o therefore_o not_o apposite_o here_o allege_v four_o mr._n o._n seem_v here_o to_o countenance_v presbyterian_a order_n by_o popish_a 〈◊〉_d and_o canonsframe_v in_o the_o dregs_o of_o time_n when_o the_o romish_a corruption_n be_v at_o their_o height_n but_o i_o like_v they_o never_o the_o better_a for_o that_o the_o roman_n be_v more_o excusable_a in_o this_o then_o our_o dissenter_n it_o be_v their_o principle_n that_o all_o church-officer_n derive_v from_o and_o depend_v mere_o upon_o the_o pope_n will._n he_o may_v then_o communicate_v the_o privilege_n to_o who_o he_o will_v even_o to_o a_o deacon_n but_o that_o a_o presbyterian_a dissenter_n shall_v justify_v his_o order_n by_o a_o pope_n decree_n be_v something_o extraordinary_a and_o extravagant_a as_o i_o fancy_n but_o second_o i_o will_v observe_v that_o columba_n a_o presbyter_n himself_o usurp_v or_o receive_v from_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o province_n of_o delried_n a_o dominion_n over_o a_o great_a province_n in_o the_o north-west_n of_o the_o now_o scotland_n over_o the_o monk_n and_o culdee_n if_o any_o such_o be_v yea_o even_o over_o his_o fellow_n presbyter_n themselves_o for_o all_o or_o many_o of_o they_o at_o least_o be_v presbyter_n and_o last_o over_o the_o bishop_n also_o if_o it_o will_v be_v acknowledge_v there_o be_v such_o in_o the_o province_n of_o hy._n beside_o he_o yet_o retain_v a_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o monastery_n of_o dearmuch_o in_o ireland_n which_o himself_o have_v former_o erect_v and_o his_o successor_n over_o many_o more_o monastery_n of_o lesser_a note_n which_o spring_v out_o of_o these_o two_o both_o in_o 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o 〈◊〉_d now_o this_o be_v a_o wonderful_a piece_n of_o antiquity_n to_o justify_v the_o principle_n 4._o and_o practice_n of_o the_o unite_a brethren_n at_o present_a among_o we_o if_o it_o prove_v presbyterian_a ordination_n it_o destroy_v presbyterian_a parity_n unless_o mr._n o._n will_v assert_v that_o the_o monk_n of_o hylas_n be_v equal_a to_o the_o abbot_n and_o that_o every_o monk_n be_v the_o abbot_n in_o his_o turn_n pro_fw-la tempore_fw-la what_o room_n then_o have_v mr._n o._n to_o talk_v of_o bishop_n receive_v their_o power_n from_o king_n rule_v over_o many_o church_n and_o congregation_n exercise_v jurisdiction_n over_o their_o fellow_n presbyter_n as_o he_o think_v and_o that_o for_o life_n too_o all_o this_o do_v columba_n and_o his_o successor_n who_o be_v pretend_v by_o mr._n baxter_n to_o have_v restore_v the_o culdee_n or_o presbyter_n strength_n against_o the_o encroachment_n of_o palladius_n but_o all_o this_o while_n the_o tyrant_n only_o be_v change_v not_o the_o tyranny_n the_o name_n alter_v not_o the_o thing_n instead_o of_o palladius_n the_o culdee_n and_o monk_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o columba_n and_o in_o the_o place_n of_o a_o bishop_n be_v set_v up_o a_o archpresbyter_n moreover_o i_o will_v ask_v whether_o in_o the_o suppose_a ordination_n at_o hylas_n by_o presbyter_n the_o monk-presbyter_n can_v or_o do_v ordain_v without_o the_o abbot-presbyter_n if_o not_o as_o i_o believe_v all_o will_n and_o must_v grant_v our_o unite_a brother_n will_v find_v little_a relief_n from_o this_o rare_a instance_n of_o presbyterian_a parity_n and_o ordination_n i_o shall_v here_o have_v conclude_v this_o chapter_n but_o mr._n o._n in_o the_o midst_n of_o this_o controversy_n have_v interweave_v a_o invidious_a reflection_n upon_o episcopacy_n and_o assert_v that_o the_o hierarchy_n in_o the_o church_n of_o 149._o the_o roman_a empire_n have_v their_o platform_n from_o the_o heathen_a who_o have_v their_o flamen_n and_o arch-flaman_n and_o i_o know_v not_o what_o ans._n 1._o if_o the_o heathen_n have_v sundry_a officer_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o their_o idolatrous_a religion_n subordinate_a to_o one_o another_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v the_o christian_n take_v it_o from_o they_o why_o not_o from_o the_o jewish_a hierarchy_n his_o belove_a hilarius_n sardus_n be_v of_o this_o opinion_n or_o why_o may_v it_o not_o not_o be_v think_v a_o piece_n of_o natural_a religion_n wherein_o the_o patriarch_n jew_n gentile_n all_o agree_n but_o let_v we_o see_v how_o he_o attempt_v to_o make_v good_a this_o reflection_n of_o the_o christian_n derive_v their_o hierarchy_n 〈◊〉_d the_o heathen_a he_o ground_n it_o on_o the_o epistle_n of_o julian_n to_o arsacius_n the_o gentile_n chief-priest_n in_o galatia_n and_o after_o the_o citation_n of_o a_o scrap_n out_o of_o eusebius_n which_o i_o do_v not_o find_v in_o the_o place_n direct_v to_o cry_v out_o here_o be_v a_o precedent_n for_o bishop_n intermeddle_v with_o state_n affair_n whereas_o any_o one_o may_v know_v that_o will_v but_o read_v or_o understand_v that_o epistle_n which_o mr._n o._n never_o do_v i_o preceive_v that_o it_o be_v entire_o spend_v about_o religious_a matter_n and_o direct_v how_o arsacius_n the_o chief_a priest_n shall_v behave_v himself_o in_o govern_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o gentile_a religion_n thus_o we_o be_v wont_n to_o be_v teaze_v by_o a_o sort_n of_o man_n that_o do_v not_o or_o will_v not_o understand_v what_o they_o say_v who_o so_o they_o may_v cast_v dirt_n upon_o we_o care_v not_o how_o ignorant_o and_o false_o they_o do_v it_o but_o to_o let_v this_o pass_v the_o question_n here_o be_v whether_o the_o christian_n derive_v their_o form_n of_o church_n government_n by_o bishop_n from_o the_o gentile_n or_o the_o gentile_n from_o they_o this_o latter_a i_o undertake_v to_o make_v out_o first_o from_o the_o ancient_a writer_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n who_o argue_v for_o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o bishop_n as_o be_v borrow_v from_o the_o levitical_a high_a priest_n priest_n and_o levite_n all_o the_o world_n know_v this_o i_o need_v not_o bring_v forth_o 〈◊〉_d testimony_n even_o mr._n oh_o so_fw-mi oft_o mention_v hilary_n be_v one_o but_o of_o this_o i_o have_v speak_v before_o second_o although_o the_o druid_n according_a to_o caesar_n have_v such_o a_o sort_n of_o government_n among_o they_o yet_o in_o the_o east_n where_o episcopacy_n be_v first_o establish_v the_o gentile_n have_v no_o such_o government_n as_o appear_v from_o what_o eusebius_n have_v note_v of_o maximinus_n 4._o the_o heathen_a emperor_n who_o observe_v the_o way_n of_o church_n government_n
scripture_n clemens_n romanus_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o lord_n appoint_v who_o be_v to_o minister_v in_o divine_a office_n among_o the_o christian_n and_o ignatius_n need_v not_o here_o to_o be_v bring_v in_o for_o evidence_n but_o let_v we_o consider_v the_o several_a instance_n mr._n o._n give_v in_o confirmation_n of_o this_o paradox_n that_o there_o be_v no_o minister_n in_o the_o church_n at_o the_o beginning_n the_o first_o be_v of_o philip._n but_o philip_n have_v be_v ordain_v by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o beside_o be_v a_o person_n endue_v with_o extraordinary_a and_o supernatural_a gift_n that_o be_v be_v a_o prophet_n and_o of_o such_o i_o ready_o grant_v it_o true_a that_o they_o be_v not_o strict_o and_o indispensable_o tie_v to_o common_a rule_n of_o order_n but_o may_v do_v what_o the_o spirit_n move_v they_o to_o but_o it_o be_v remarkable_a what_o hilary_n himself_o say_v of_o philip_n evangelistae_fw-la diaconi_fw-la sunt_fw-la sicut_fw-la philippus_n so_o then_o here_o be_v minister_n thus_o early_o beside_o the_o apostle_n as_o for_o apollo_n act._n 18._o 24._o to_o pass_v by_o other_o observation_n that_o may_v be_v useful_a i_o much_o question_n whether_o when_o he_o preach_v at_o ephesus_n he_o be_v yet_o a_o christian_a or_o rather_o be_o positive_a he_o be_v none_o for_o he_o know_v only_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n v_o 25._o unto_o who_o therefore_o aquila_n and_o priscilla_n expound_v the_o way_n of_o god_n more_o perfect_o v_o 26._o and_o though_o after_o this_o he_o still_o preach_v at_o corinth_n v_o 28._o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o by_o this_o time_n he_o have_v be_v ordain_v to_o it_o for_o any_o thing_n appear_v to_o the_o contrary_a and_o we_o must_v not_o think_v none_o be_v ordain_v but_o such_o of_o who_o it_o be_v express_o testify_v in_o scripture_n we_o ought_v rather_o to_o conclude_v all_o be_v ordain_v because_o many_o be_v of_o aquila_n and_o priscilla_n their_o instruct_v apollo_n i_o have_v show_v elsewhere_o that_o it_o be_v private_a not_o ministerial_a instruction_n in_o short_a i_o know_v not_o one_o example_n of_o a_o person_n unordain_v and_o of_o ordinary_a gift_n only_o that_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o preach_v in_o any_o christian_a assembly_n much_o more_o to_o administer_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n nor_o can_v i_o fancy_v when_o that_o time_n be_v of_o which_o hilary_n speak_v when_o every_o man_n that_o will_v do_v administer_v in_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n but_o the_o story_n of_o vrigen_n be_v urge_v who_o be_v make_v catechist_n in_o the_o school_n of_o alexandria_n and_o teach_v the_o catechuman_n in_o the_o rudiment_n of_o christianty_n as_o dr._n cave_n relate_v it_o and_o what_o be_v yet_o more_o theoctistus_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n and_o alexander_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n invite_v he_o to_o preach_v before_o they_o as_o africa_n have_v always_o be_v note_v for_o a_o country_n abound_v with_o strange_a and_o monstrous_a creature_n so_o be_v we_o continual_o pester_v with_o some_o surprise_v and_o extraordinary_a fact_n in_o the_o egyptian_a church_n as_o if_o that_o differ_v from_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o but_o to_o this_o example_n of_o origen_n i_o first_o say_v that_o mr._n o._n be_v as_o much_o oblige_v to_o reconcile_v it_o with_o the_o presbyterian_a principle_n as_o i_o be_o with_o the_o episcopal_a that_o origen_n though_o he_o instruct_v the_o catechuman_n at_o alexandria_n in_o the_o principle_n of_o christianty_n so_o do_v our_o schoolmaster_n though_o not_o ordain_v haply_o once_o or_o so_o he_o preach_v at_o caesarea_n before_o he_o have_v be_v ordain_v so_o do_v our_o fellow_n of_o college_n at_o the_o university_n yet_o this_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o sacrament_n which_o he_o do_v not_o presume_v to_o administer_v and_o last_o though_o theoctistus_n and_o alexander_n of_o jerusalem_n out_o of_o curiosity_n desirous_a to_o hear_v the_o great_a origen_n discourse_n upon_o some_o profound_a point_n in_o christianty_n invite_v he_o into_o the_o pulpit_n yet_o demetrius_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n condemn_v it_o and_o it_o become_v a_o scandal_n and_o occasion_n of_o offence_n among_o they_o mr._n o._n speak_v of_o evangelist_n will_v prove_v they_o to_o have_v 145._o be_v unfixt_v officer_n from_o this_o observation_n out_o of_o hilary_n that_o evangelist_n that_o be_v deacon_n as_o hilary_n think_v do_v preach_v sine_fw-la cathedra_fw-la which_o he_o expound_v without_o a_o fix_a residence_n ans._n this_o be_v more_o absurd_a than_o any_o thing_n i_o have_v meet_v with_o in_o my_o adversary_n sine_fw-la cathedra_fw-la without_o a_o fix_a residence_n he_o may_v as_o well_o have_v render_v it_o without_o fear_n or_o wit._n the_o meaning_n doubtless_o be_v that_o whereas_o presbyter_n have_v their_o stall_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bishop_n and_o sit_v in_o his_o presence_n 57_o and_o perhaps_o according_a to_o hilary_n preach_v out_o of_o they_o the_o deacon_n always_o stand_v nor_o have_v their_o stall_n so_o that_o when_o permit_v they_o preach_v sine_fw-la cathedra_fw-la stantibus_fw-la diaconis_fw-la we_o often_o meet_v with_o in_o st._n cyprian_n and_o hilary_n himself_o take_v notice_n that_o the_o 101._o roman_a deacon_n do_v not_o assume_v the_o privilege_n of_o sit_v in_o the_o church_n have_v 〈◊〉_d cathedra_fw-la no_o seat_n in_o it_o jerom_n have_v also_o observe_v the_o same_o sedent_fw-la presbyteri_fw-la stant_fw-la diaconi_fw-la so_o that_o hilary_n meaning_n be_v hereby_o to_o distinguish_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o and_o intimate_v that_o deacon_n be_v inferior_a to_o presbyter_n be_v not_o suffer_v to_o sit_v or_o to_o have_v a_o stall_n in_o the_o church_n as_o the_o other_o have_v in_o short_a no_o one_o sure_o will_v dare_v to_o say_v that_o deacon_n be_v unfixt_v officer_n in_o the_o church_n either_o in_o the_o apostle_n or_o in_o hilary_n day_n mr._n o._n and_o before_o he_o blondel_n in_o order_n to_o prove_v that_o 21._o bishop_n be_v mere_o the_o first_o presbyter_n and_o have_v only_o precedency_n but_o no_o power_n or_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o rest_n argue_v from_o hilary_n that_o in_o the_o begin_n the_o old_a presbyter_n in_o year_n succeed_v into_o the_o episcopacy_n and_o so_o become_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o precedent_n of_o the_o presbytery_n and_o that_o this_o apostolical_a custom_n or_o 〈◊〉_d continue_v till_o it_o be_v by_o experience_n find_v that_o undeserving_a or_o disable_v old_a man_n be_v advance_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n and_o the_o dishonour_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v therefore_o change_v into_o election_n to_o the_o end_n not_o order_n but_o merit_n may_v take_v place_n ans._n 1._o the_o controversy_n be_v not_o about_o the_o manner_n of_o succeed_v into_o the_o 〈◊〉_d the_o method_n be_v either_o prescribe_v in_o scripture_n or_o not_o if_o it_o be_v let_v the_o presbyterian_o show_v where_o and_o we_o promise_v to_o observe_v it_o for_o the_o future_a if_o not_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o church_n to_o order_n this_o circumstance_n as_o shall_v be_v think_v fit_a in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o may_v not_o lay_v aside_o bishop_n because_o we_o have_v not_o a_o divine_a rule_n about_o their_o succession_n many_o thing_n be_v appoint_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o particular_a circumstance_n be_v leave_v at_o large_a unto_o humane_a prudence_n we_o be_v command_v to_o read_v the_o scripture_n but_o not_o how_o much_o at_o a_o time_n whether_o one_o or_o more_o section_n whether_o one_o or_o more_o chapter_n nor_o in_o what_o order_n shall_v we_o therefore_o abolish_v the_o command_n itself_o because_o these_o circumstance_n be_v not_o express_o deliver_v to_o we_o in_o scripture_n god_n forbid_v suppose_v then_o that_o there_o have_v be_v different_a custom_n take_v up_o about_o the_o way_n of_o succeed_v into_o the_o episcopacy_n this_o be_v no_o prejudice_n against_o episcopacy_n its_o self_n 2._o it_o be_v some_o matter_n of_o wonder_n to_o i_o how_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n can_v be_v prejudice_v by_o the_o old_a presbyter_n succeed_v as_o of_o right_a to_o the_o first_o chair_n or_o presidency_n if_o he_o receive_v thereby_o no_o power_n or_o jurisdiction_n as_o our_o adverrsary_n pretend_v 3._o it_o be_v false_a and_o nothing_o can_v be_v false_a than_o this_o conceit_n of_o the_o old_a presbyter_n succeed_v into_o the_o episcopacy_n timothy_n be_v a_o young_a man_n and_o promote_v by_o st._n paul_n and_o that_o not_o for_o his_o age_n but_o his_o merit_n for_o sure_o none_o can_v believe_v he_o be_v the_o old_a among_o the_o ephesian_a elder_n what_o occasion_n then_o for_o the_o apostle_n admonition_n let_v no_o man_n despise_v thy_o youth_n if_o all_o the_o presbyter_n be_v young_a than_o himself_o and_o jerom_n who_o affirm_v that_o paul_n ordain_v timothy_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n his_o maxim_n be_v presbyter_n aetatis_fw-la nomen_fw-la est_fw-la episcopus_fw-la
haply_o be_v mean_v as_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o act_n here_o in_o england_n in_o subordination_n to_o and_o by_o the_o pope_n authority_n not_o a_o syllable_n of_o the_o equality_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v here_o to_o be_v find_v only_o that_o both_o depend_v upon_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n and_o that_o in_o civil_a and_o moral_a matter_n only_o the_o second_o testimony_n allege_v by_o mr._n o._n be_v another_o if_o haply_o it_o be_v another_o book_n entitle_v the_o institution_n of_o a_o christian_a 113._o man_n draw_v up_o by_o the_o whole_a clergy_n in_o a_o provincial_a synod_n anno_fw-la 1537._o set_v forth_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o king_n henry_n viii_o and_o the_o parliament_n and_o command_v to_o be_v preach_v out_o of_o this_o book_n afterward_o translate_v into_o latin_a as_o i_o guess_v mr._n o._n cite_v as_o follow_v in_o novo_fw-la testamento_fw-la nulla_fw-la mentio_fw-la facta_fw-la est_fw-la aliorum_fw-la graduum_fw-la 〈◊〉_d distinctionum_fw-la in_o ordinibus_fw-la sed_fw-la diaconorum_fw-la vel_fw-la ministrorum_fw-la &_o presbyterorum_fw-la sive_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la which_o word_n it_o must_v be_v confess_v look_v pretty_a fair_a and_o favourable_a towards_o mr._n o._n at_o first_o sight_n ans._n in_o the_o first_o place_n i_o will_v here_o present_v the_o reader_n with_o what_o the_o author_n of_o the_o memorial_n have_v deliver_v concern_v ibid._n this_o and_o some_o other_o book_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o write_v with_o the_o same_o design_n the_o bishop_n book_n otherwise_o call_v the_o godly_a and_o pious_a institution_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n of_o which_o before_o come_v forth_o again_o two_o year_n after_o sc_n in_o the_o year_n 1540_o but_o bear_v another_o name_n viz._n a_o necessary_a doctrine_n and_o erudition_n for_o a_o christian_a man_n print_v also_o by_o barthelet_n that_o this_o also_o be_v once_o more_o publish_v in_o engglish_a and_o date_a anno_fw-la 1543._o as_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o say_a book_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o those_o time_n though_o at_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o title_n page_n i_o find_v it_o date_v also_o 1534._o this_o be_v compose_v by_o cranmer_n but_o call_v the_o king_n book_n because_o hen_n viii_o recommend_v it_o to_o the_o people_n by_o proclamation_n add_v to_o it_o by_o way_n of_o preface_n and_o assume_v to_o himself_o the_o be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o mr._n stripe_n far_o acquaint_v i_o that_o in_o the_o year_n 1536._o have_v be_v publish_v a_o book_n entitle_v the_o bishop_n book_n because_o frame_v by_o they_o i_o guess_v it_o the_o same_o with_o that_o i_o first_o speak_v of_o and_o that_o it_o be_v write_v by_o the_o bishop_n anno_fw-la 1636._o but_o print_a 1637._o and_o he_o yet_o tell_v we_o of_o another_o which_o come_v forth_o in_o the_o year_n 1633._o also_o common_o call_v the_o king_n book_n but_o entitle_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o kingly_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n i_o have_v procure_v a_o sight_n also_o of_o a_o latin_a book_n go_v under_o this_o title_n christiani_n hominis_fw-la institutio_fw-la edit_fw-la 1544._o in_o the_o preface_n whereof_o it_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v at_o first_o write_v in_o english_a and_o then_o translate_v into_o latin_a by_o who_o or_o by_o what_o authority_n i_o find_v not_o and_o whether_o this_o be_v the_o same_o with_o mr._n oh_o i_o know_v not_o but_o this_o be_v sure_a mr._n oh_o be_v print_v 1537._o as_o himself_o confess_v my_o 1544._o and_o the_o passage_n cite_v by_o mr._n o._n be_v no_o where_o to_o be_v read_v in_o i_o and_o since_o nothing_o like_o it_o be_v to_o be_v meet_v with_o in_o any_o of_o the_o other_o book_n and_o all_o the_o controversy_n in_o those_o time_n be_v between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o english_a bishop_n not_o about_o the_o superiority_n or_o the_o distinction_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n in_o the_o same_o church_n i_o be_o apt_a to_o fear_v some_o foul_a play_n but_o concern_v the_o testimony_n its_o self_n as_o allow_v of_o i_o shall_v speak_v more_o by_o and_o by_o mean_a while_n let_v we_o search_v for_o what_o may_v be_v have_v to_o the_o purpose_n in_o the_o king_n book_n entitle_v a_o necessary_a doctrine_n and_o erudition_n of_o a_o christian_a man._n if_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v that_o mr._n oh_o deduction_n before_o speak_v of_o be_v borrow_v not_o out_o of_o the_o king_n book_n but_o the_o bishop_n book_n yet_o i_o hope_v the_o one_o will_v be_v allow_v to_o explain_v the_o other_o thus_o than_o i_o read_v in_o the_o king_n book_n that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n be_v a_o gift_n or_o grace_n of_o i._n ministration_n in_o christ_n church_n give_v of_o god_n to_o christian_a man_n by_o the_o consecration_n and_o imposition_n of_o the_o bishop_n hand_n that_o this_o sacrament_n be_v confer_v and_o give_v at_o the_o begin_n by_o the_o apostle_n unto_o priest_n and_o bishop_n that_o st._n paul_n ordered_n and_o consecrate_a timothy_n priest_n that_o the_o apostle_n appoint_v and_o will_v the_o other_o bishop_n after_o they_o to_o do_v the_o like_a as_o be_v manifest_a from_o tit._n 1._o 5._o 1_o tim._n 5._o 22._o that_o there_o be_v no_o certain_a rule_n prescribe_v or_o limit_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o 2._o the_o nomination_n election_n presentation_n or_o appoint_v of_o any_o such_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n but_o the_o same_o be_v leave_v unto_o the_o positive_a law_n and_o ordinance_n of_o every_o christian_a region_n provide_v make_v or_o to_o be_v make_v etc._n etc._n he_o afterward_o enumerate_v in_o particular_a the_o common_a office_n and_o ministry_n both_o of_o priest_n and_o bishop_n sc_n teach_v preach_a minister_a the_o sacrament_n consecrate_v and_o offer_v the_o bless_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n lose_v and_o assoil_v from_o sin_n excommunicate_v and_o final_o pray_v for_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o their_o own_o flock_n in_o special_a that_o they_o may_v not_o exercise_n nor_o execute_v those_o office_n but_o with_o such_o sort_n and_o such_o limitation_n as_o the_o law_n permit_v and_o suffer_v 5._o that_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v deacon_n also_o acts._n 6._o that_o of_o these_o two_o order_n only_o that_o be_v priest_n and_o deacon_n scripture_n make_v express_v mention_n and_o how_o they_o be_v confer_v of_o the_o apostle_n by_o prayer_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n that_o patriarch_n primate_fw-la 6._o archbishop_n and_o metropolitan_o have_v not_o now_o nor_o heretofore_o at_o any_o time_n have_v just_o and_o lawful_o authority_n power_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o other_o bishop_n give_v they_o by_o god_n in_o holy_a scripture_n that_o all_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o any_o one_o bishop_n over_o another_o be_v and_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o consent_n ordinance_n and_o positive_a law_n of_o man_n only_o etc._n etc._n in_o the_o christiani_n hominis_fw-la institutio_fw-la which_o i_o have_v see_v there_o be_v some_o disagreement_n to_o be_v find_v for_o whereas_o the_o necessary_a doctrine_n and_o erudition_n etc._n etc._n seem_v to_o speak_v of_o two_o order_n only_o i._n e._n priest_n and_o deacon_n the_o christiani_n hominis_fw-la institutio_fw-la express_v it_o thus_o the_o his_o tantum_fw-la ordinationibus_fw-la presbyterorum_fw-la &_o diaconorum_fw-la scriptura_fw-la express_v meminit_fw-la etc._n etc._n meaning_n as_o i_o suppose_v not_o two_o rank_n and_o degree_n of_o church_n officer_n but_o two_o ordination_n or_o consecration_n of_o person_n appoint_v to_o the_o ministry_n sc_n of_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n that_o be_v the_o consecration_n of_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n be_v only_o express_o mention_v in_o scripture_n and_o that_o bishop_n receive_v not_o any_o new_a distinct_a imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o so_o order_n in_o the_o necessary_a doctrine_n etc._n etc._n be_v to_o be_v understand_v as_o i_o conceive_v not_o of_o person_n but_o of_o the_o ordination_n of_o they_o as_o it_o be_v often_o use_v unto_o this_o day_n it_o be_v not_o then_o affirm_v in_o either_o that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n but_o two_o rank_n or_o degree_n of_o ecclesiastical_a office_n that_o be_v priest_n and_o deacon_n and_o not_o bishop_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n but_o that_o two_o consecration_n only_o be_v express_o mention_v there_o nevertheless_o a_o superior_a rank_n may_v be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n though_o not_o separate_v thereto_o by_o a_o new_a imposition_n of_o hand_n mro_n quotation_n seem_v indeed_o to_o sound_v quite_o to_o another_o sense_n and_o to_o his_o purpose_n rather_o sc_n that_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n no_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o other_o degree_n and_o distinction_n in_o ordinibus_fw-la but_o of_o deacon_n or_o minister_n and_o of_o presbyter_n or_o bishop_n how_o minister_n and_o bishop_n creep_v in_o here_o i_o will_v not_o say_v but_o they_o be_v capable_a still_o of_o the_o same_o sense_n sc_n that_o
or_o interloper_n that_o will_v thrust_v themselves_o in_o among_o they_o and_o against_o the_o viper_n which_o will_v arise_v out_o of_o their_o own_o bowel_n be_v to_o take_v heed_n to_o themselves_o and_o to_o the_o flock_n to_o feed_v the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o other_o word_n over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v you_o overseer_n be_v only_o a_o remind_v they_o by_o the_o way_n of_o their_o power_n and_o duty_n all_o government_n of_o what_o kind_n soever_o it_o be_v it_o be_v confess_v be_v in_o general_a a_o remedy_n against_o schism_n but_o these_o elder_n be_v not_o say_v to_o have_v be_v ordain_v overseer_n by_o the_o apostle_n as_o if_o that_o particular_a government_n of_o presbyterian_a parity_n be_v especial_o intend_v for_o a_o remedy_n against_o future_a schism_n the_o proper_a and_o parcular_a remedy_n here_o prescribe_v by_o st._n paul_n be_v to_o take_v heed_n etc._n etc._n and_o as_o it_o follow_v v_o 31._o to_o watch_v etc._n etc._n without_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o provide_v effectual_o against_o a_o surprise_n from_o their_o enemy_n the_o wolf_n and_o the_o viper_n there_o speak_v of_o be_v overseer_n or_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n will_v not_o do_v the_o work_n whether_o they_o act_v in_o a_o parity_n or_o in_o subordination_n to_o some_o single_a person_n be_v the_o same_o thing_n as_o to_o the_o apostle_n argument_n here_o and_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o still_o it_o be_v their_o take_a heed_n and_o watch_v must_v secure_v they_o against_o schism_n and_o against_o heresy_n but_o if_o afterward_o this_o presbyterian_a parity_n be_v by_o experience_n find_v inconvenient_a rather_o a_o nursery_n and_o occasion_n of_o schism_n and_o therefore_o for_o that_o very_a reason_n alter_v into_o prelatical_a form_n of_o government_n for_o the_o security_n of_o the_o church_n in_o peace_n and_o order_n as_o jerom_n own_v it_o be_v most_o proper_a to_o say_v that_o prelacy_n be_v introduce_v into_o the_o church_n as_o a_o design_a remedy_n against_o schism_n and_o not_o presbyterian_a parity_n which_o be_v indeed_o the_o occasion_n of_o it_o at_o least_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o prevent_v it_o mr._n o._n further_o argue_v that_o god_n do_v not_o can_v not_o change_v 103._o the_o first_o institute_v church_n government_n because_o he_o foresee_v all_o event_n and_o know_v how_o to_o prevent_v schism_n by_o apt_a and_o effectual_a remedy_n and_o with_o he_o be_v no_o variableness_n nor_o shadow_n of_o turn_v ans._n such_o general_a harangue_n though_o ground_v on_o true_a principle_n if_o right_o understand_v and_o explain_v prove_v nothing_o for_o on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o know_v that_o god_n ofttimes_o repent_v and_o take_v new_a measure_n for_o the_o accomplish_n his_o own_o great_a and_o good_a design_n god_n employ_v noah_n a_o preacher_n of_o righteousness_n to_o persuade_v the_o then_o wicked_a world_n to_o repentance_n and_o reformation_n when_o this_o succeed_v not_o it_o repent_v he_o that_o he_o have_v make_v man_n and_o so_o he_o drown_v all_o the_o world_n except_o eight_o person_n god_n who_o himself_o in_o a_o peculiar_a manner_n govern_v israel_n appoint_v what_o prophet_n and_o ruler_n shall_v succeed_v at_o a_o vacancy_n the_o government_n of_o israel_n be_v hence_o call_v a_o theocracy_n yield_v to_o the_o importunity_n of_o the_o people_n and_o give_v they_o a_o king_n saul_n to_o govern_v they_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o nation_n but_o present_o after_o it_o repent_v god_n that_o he_o have_v set_v up_o saul_n to_o be_v king_n because_o he_o turn_v back_o from_o follow_v god_n 1_o sam_n 15._o 11._o where_o then_o be_v the_o absurdity_n in_o say_v god_n upon_o the_o occasion_n of_o schism_n direct_v the_o apostle_n to_o alter_v the_o government_n among_o the_o christian_n or_o rather_o as_o bishop_n pearson_n 73._o speak_v to_o perfect_a and_o complete_a it_o for_o the_o apostle_n so_o long_o as_o it_o seem_v good_a unto_o they_o retain_v in_o their_o own_o hand_n the_o government_n of_o all_o the_o church_n by_o they_o found_v as_o appear_v from_o act._n 14._o 21_o 22_o 23._o and_o chap._n 15._o 36._o but_o when_o the_o time_n of_o their_o departure_n draw_v on_o or_o when_o business_n increase_a on_o their_o hand_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o many_o conversion_n they_o be_v force_v to_o be_v absent_a or_o distant_a from_o those_o church_n a_o long_a time_n they_o substitute_v in_o their_o room_n successor_n and_o single_a person_n to_o preside_v over_o the_o church_n which_o indeed_o in_o exact_a speak_n be_v not_o a_o change_n but_o a_o continuance_n rather_o of_o the_o former_a government_n all_o the_o difference_n be_v that_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n be_v governor_n of_o many_o church_n these_o their_o successor_n be_v rule_n but_o of_o one_o haply_o of_o which_o difference_n i_o speak_v afterward_o mr._n o._n after_o he_o have_v endeavour_v to_o confirm_v his_o own_o opinion_n 104._o by_o such_o weak_a argument_n as_o we_o have_v here_o mention_v proceed_v in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o attack_v i_o many_o thing_n be_v here_o repeat_v which_o have_v be_v answer_v already_o and_o many_o thing_n offer_v which_o depend_v on_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o main_a point_n and_o which_o to_o make_v a_o particular_a reply_n unto_o here_o be_v superfluous_a mr._n o._n the_o 1_o tim._n 1._o 3._o do_v not_o say_v that_o paul_n constitute_v 106._o timothy_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n that_o be_v ruler_n ans._n let_v the_o text_n with_o the_o other_o passage_n of_o this_o epistle_n relate_v unto_o the_o power_n commit_v unto_o timothy_n speak_v for_o itself_o i_o put_v they_o together_o in_o t._n n._n and_o mr._n o._n have_v no_o other_o way_n to_o evade_v the_o force_n of_o the_o evidence_n but_o plead_v that_o timothy_n be_v a_o evangelist_n and_o extraordinary_a officer_n as_o before_o be_v note_v mr._n o_o st._n john_n reside_v long_o at_o ephesus_n after_o paul_n departure_n thence_o he_o return_v thither_o after_o his_o release_n from_o his_o banishment_n at_o paimos_n and_o live_v there_o and_o among_o the_o other_o asian_a church_n until_o trajan_n day_n by_o consequence_n st._n john_n be_v the_o supreme_a ruler_n of_o ephesus_n and_o not_o timothy_n ans._n let_v we_o see_v what_o the_o author_n he_o quote_v say_v in_o this_o matter_n euseb._n l._n 3._o c._n 18._o write_v that_o in_o the_o persecution_n raise_v by_o domitian_n john_n be_v banish_v into_o the_o island_n patmos_n and_o out_o of_o 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o receive_v his_o revelation_n at_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o domitian_n '_o s_o reign_n no_o more_o than_o this_o be_v par._n to_o be_v find_v in_o that_o chapter_n of_o euseb._n cite_v by_o the_o minister_n and_o yet_o mr._n o._n affirm_v euseb._n here_o write_v that_o john_n return_v to_o ephesus_n after_o he_o be_v release_v etc._n etc._n there_o be_v here_o not_o a_o syllable_n of_o return_v nor_o of_o ephesus_n nor_o of_o release_v nor_o of_o live_v at_o ephesus_n or_o among_o the_o other_o asian_a church_n until_o trajan_n '_o s_o day_n this_o notwithstanding_o i_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o euseb._n in_o other_o place_n assert_n these_o thing_n but_o this_o signify_v 24._o nothing_o euseb._n say_v not_o that_o john_n in_o particular_a govern_v ephesus_n but_o the_o asian_a church_n after_o the_o manner_n it_o may_v seem_v of_o a_o metropolitan_a to_o the_o same_o purpose_n speak_v jerom_n c._n s._n e._n sub_fw-la nerva_n principe_fw-la redit_fw-la ephesum_fw-la 〈◊〉_d usque_fw-la ad_fw-la trajanum_fw-la perseverans_fw-la totas_fw-la asiae_n fundavit_fw-la rexitque_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la they_o affirm_v not_o that_o john_n govern_v these_o asian_a church_n immediate_o after_o st._n paul_n departure_n into_o macedonia_n but_o in_o the_o day_n of_o trajan_n and_o after_o his_o release_n out_o of_o patmos_n nor_o do_v they_o tell_v we_o who_o govern_v ephesus_n and_o the_o other_o asian_a church_n from_o the_o time_n of_o paul_n go_v into_o macedonia_n 1_o tim._n 1._o 3._o unto_o the_o reign_n of_o nerva_n or_o trajan_n and_o therefore_o timothy_n may_v in_o that_o interval_n of_o time_n notwithstanding_o any_o thing_n here_o produce_v to_o the_o contrary_a have_v be_v the_o ruler_n or_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n i_o do_v further_o grant_v that_o 〈◊〉_d l._n 3._o c._n 3._o write_v that_o john_n remain_v among_o the_o asian_a christian_n or_o church_n until_o trajan_n but_o he_o say_v not_o that_o the_o apostle_n remain_v there_o from_o the_o time_n of_o paul_n last_o depart_v from_o ephesus_n into_o macedonia_n when_o he_o constitute_v timothy_n ruler_n or_o bishop_n there_o one_o thing_n must_v not_o be_v omit_v that_o whereas_o eusebius_n and_o irenaeus_n confess_v what_o be_v indeed_o manifest_a in_o scripture_n that_o paul_n found_v these_o asian_a church_n yet_o jerom_n make_v john_n the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o ruler_n of_o they_o totas_fw-la asiae_n
fundavit_fw-la &_o rexit_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la which_o how_o to_o reconcile_v may_v deserve_v a_o few_o word_n that_o paul_n found_v the_o asian_o church_n can_v be_v deny_v and_o settle_v their_o government_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v question_v that_o these_o asian_a church_n be_v to_o decay_v by_o the_o time_n of_o john_n banishment_n into_o patmos_n be_v manifest_a from_o the_o epistle_n unto_o the_o seven_o church_n in_o the_o revelation_n that_o john_n after_o his_o release_n return_v into_o 〈◊〉_d new_a form_v regulate_v and_o reform_v 〈◊〉_d church_n be_v most_o probable_a and_o therefore_o be_v say_v by_o jerom_n to_o have_v found_v and_o govern_v they_o perhaps_o he_o remove_v some_o of_o the_o angel_n or_o bishop_n of_o those_o church_n who_o have_v misbehave_v themselves_o in_o their_o office_n whether_o for_o a_o while_o he_o personal_o govern_v they_o all_o himself_o without_o continue_v or_o place_v over_o they_o bishop_n or_o whether_o as_o a_o metropolitan_a have_v a_o subordinate_a bishop_n in_o every_o church_n under_o he_o can_v with_o certainty_n be_v determine_v but_o it_o be_v out_o of_o question_n that_o he_o appoint_v bishop_n in_o they_o before_o he_o die_v as_o appear_v from_o 〈◊〉_d epistle_n and_o from_o those_o remarkable_a word_n in_o tertullian_n 32._o ordo_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la ad_fw-la originem_fw-la recensus_fw-la in_o joannem_fw-la stabit_fw-la authorem_fw-la mr._n o._n that_o he_o may_v shake_v off_o the_o argument_n for_o bishop_n 108._o draw_v from_o the_o angel_n in_o the_o revelation_n argue_v 1._o that_o angel_n minister_n to_o the_o heir_n of_o salvation_n heb._n 1._o 14._o which_o import_v a_o ministry_n not_o superiority_n ans._n he_o abuse_v the_o text_n it_o be_v minister_a for_o not_o to_o the_o heir_n of_o salvation_n they_o minister_n to_o god_n for_o we_o so_o the_o king_n be_v the_o minister_n of_o or_o to_o god_n rom._n 13._o 4._o for_o we_o nevertheless_o he_o be_v our_o superior_a even_o as_o the_o angel_n be_v brief_o by_o this_o argument_n neither_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o the_o apostle_n nor_o bishop_n nor_o presbyter_n nor_o dissent_v minister_n have_v any_o authority_n for_o all_o these_o minister_n for_o our_o salvation_n or_o pretend_v it_o 2._o that_o angel_n singular_a be_v often_o take_v collective_o for_o angel_n plural_a as_o be_v star_n also_o ans._n mr._n o._n have_v not_o produce_v one_o example_n hereof_o if_o any_o one_o be_v at_o leisure_n to_o examine_v the_o text_n cite_v by_o he_o he_o will_v find_v this_o true_a for_o of_o mal._n 2._o 7._o i_o treat_v by_o and_o by_o 3._o that_o the_o epistle_n be_v direct_v to_o all_o the_o believer_n of_o the_o asiatic_a church_n so_o i_o understand_v he_o and_o not_o to_o the_o angel_n only_o ans._n not_o so_o but_o to_o the_o angle_n only_o for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o believer_n 4._o that_o it_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o there_o be_v a_o hierarchy_n among_o the_o angel_n that_o the_o pseudo-dionysius_n make_v they_o the_o low_a order_n that_o therefore_o they_o can_v represent_v the_o high_a order_n in_o the_o church_n ans._n it_o be_v mere_a jangle_n to_o allege_v the_o opinion_n of_o a_o author_n confess_o spurious_a but_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o there_o be_v a_o angelical_a hierarchy_n from_o 16._o scripture_n and_o that_o angel_n be_v the_o superior_a order_n may_v be_v gather_v from_o rom._n 3._o 38._o where_o they_o reckon_v 16._o in_o the_o first_o place_n before_o principality_n and_o power_n last_o the_o superlative_a excellency_n of_o angel_n suppose_v they_o the_o low_a order_n make_v they_o a_o fit_a representation_n of_o the_o high_a degree_n among_o men._n we_o may_v say_v of_o the_o mean_a angel_n he_o that_o be_v least_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v great_a than_o the_o mighty_a potentate_n of_o the_o earth_n even_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v call_v a_o angel_n mal._n 3._o 1._o 5._o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o epistle_n allude_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o synagogue_n in_o conformity_n to_o the_o language_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n job_n 33._o 23._o hag._n 1._o 13._o mal._n 2._o 1_o 7._o ch_z 3._o 1._o ans._n in_o these_o text_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o synagogue_n nor_o any_o where_o else_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n nor_o do_v we_o meet_v with_o angel_n of_o the_o synagogue_n but_o ruler_n in_o the_o new_a nor_o any_o where_o else_o but_o in_o the_o late_a rabbin_n job_n messenger_n be_v either_o a_o real_a angel_n or_o extraordinary_a prophet_n interpreter_n and_o one_o of_o a_o thousand_o v_o 23._o hagga_n be_v a_o prophet_n so_o be_v the_o baptist_n not_o minister_n of_o synagogue_n when_o mr._n o._n appeal_n unto_o malachy_n he_o be_v go_v from_o the_o synagogue_n to_o the_o temple_n and_o so_o quit_v his_o argument_n nor_o do_v priest_n mal._n 2._o 1._o signify_v all_o even_o the_o secondary_a priest_n in_o the_o temple_n but_o the_o high_a priest_n only_o in_o succession_n who_o be_v therefore_o v_o 7._o express_v in_o the_o singular_a and_o indefinite_o or_o if_o mr._n o._n will_v have_v it_o so_o priests_z here_o signfy_v collective_o all_o high_a priest_n for_o it_o must_v be_v confess_v when_o the_o subject_a of_o a_o proposition_n be_v put_v indefinite_o in_o the_o singular_a number_n and_o the_o predicate_v belong_v to_o the_o whole_a species_n than_o the_o subject_n may_v be_v take_v collective_o and_o be_v equivalent_a to_o a_o universal_a proposition_n as_o when_o we_o say_v man_n be_v a_o rational_a creature_n we_o mean_v all_o man_n be_v so_o but_o it_o will_v be_v say_v that_o the_o predicate_v viz._n his_o lip_n shall_v keep_v knowledge_n etc._n etc._n appertain_v to_o the_o whole_a species_n of_o priest_n even_o the_o secondary_a i_o reply_v 1._o suppose_v this_o yet_o still_o there_o be_v a_o high_a priest_n in_o the_o temple_n and_o therefore_o agreeable_o hereunto_o though_o all_o the_o elder_n be_v call_v angel_n admit_v this_o yet_o there_o be_v a_o archangel_n in_o every_o church_n unto_o who_o the_o epistle_n be_v direct_v who_o be_v the_o angel_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o 2_o angel_n in_o the_o epistle_n be_v not_o describe_v by_o a_o specifical_a but_o a_o individual_a character_n ex_fw-la gr_n the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n if_o it_o be_v say_v this_o be_v a_o specifical_a character_n because_o all_o the_o elder_n be_v angel_n of_o that_o church_n i_o return_v that_o can_v be_v for_o no_o body_n ever_o direct_v a_o letter_n thus_o indefinite_o to_o all_o and_o to_o every_o one_o or_o any_o one_o of_o the_o same_o denomination_n the_o title_n may_v haply_o belong_v to_o many_o person_n for_o different_a reason_n and_o yet_o the_o letter_n be_v intend_v for_o some_o one_o more_o eminent_o call_v so_o as_o if_o a_o letter_n be_v direct_v to_o the_o speaker_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o though_o every_o member_n be_v speaker_n if_o he_o please_v and_o though_o of_o the_o topping_n and_o forward_a commoner_n we_o usual_o say_v they_o be_v speaker_n because_o they_o often_o speak_v to_o matter_n in_o debate_n yet_o every_o footboy_n will_v apprehend_v the_o letter_n be_v send_v to_o a_o particular_a determinate_a person_n common_o call_v the_o speaker_n wherefore_o if_o all_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n be_v in_o some_o sense_n angel_n yet_o the_o angel_n must_v mean_v some_o single_a person_n know_v in_o special_a manner_n style_v angel_n who_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o prelatical_a ruler_n of_o that_o church_n a_o great_a deal_n be_v argue_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o hebrew_n read_v of_o deut._n 32._o 8._o against_o that_o of_o the_o seventy_o but_o beside_o what_o have_v be_v elsewhere_o offer_v in_o the_o vindication_n of_o the_o latter_a i_o here_o add_v that_o clemens_n 2._o romanus_n *_o that_o origen_n *_o and_o jerom_n *_o himself_o the_o fierce_a stickler_n for_o the_o hebrew_n read_v the_o place_n according_a to_o the_o seventy_o it_o may_v then_o with_o reason_n be_v suspect_v that_o the_o proud_a conceit_a jew_n corrupt_v this_o scripture_n to_o magnify_v themselves_o and_o their_o nation_n as_o if_o god_n in_o divide_v the_o nation_n have_v his_o eye_n '_o special_o on_o the_o son_n of_o israel_n model_v the_o world_n according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o they_o that_o go_v down_o with_o jacob_n into_o egypt_n as_o the_o rabbin_n imagine_v as_o for_o the_o precise_a number_n of_o province_n and_o their_o guardian_n angel_n though_o the_o rabbin_n and_o the_o hebrew_n read_v of_o deut._n 32._o 8._o seem_v to_o determine_v they_o by_o the_o number_n of_o jacob_n child_n who_o go_v with_o he_o into_o egypt_n yet_o neither_o the_o seventy_o nor_o i_o have_v adventure_v so_o punctual_o to_o define_v it_o but_o have_v leave_v that_o point_n uncertain_a and_o indefinite_a it_o be_v not_o know_v into_o how_o many_o province_n god_n cast_v the_o
rector_n have_v all_o along_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o whatever_o power_n be_v commit_v to_o 〈◊〉_d be_v also_o give_v unto_o titus_n and_o reciprocal_o what_o to_o titus_n be_v commit_v to_o timothy_n beside_o i_o take_v it_o to_o be_v out_o of_o controversy_n that_o he_o to_o who_o any_o one_o part_n of_o supreme_a power_n be_v give_v be_v to_o be_v understand_v as_o invest_v with_o all_o consequent_o if_o titus_n be_v to_o appoint_v where_o every_o presbyter_n be_v to_o officiate_v he_o then_o have_v the_o power_n of_o ordination_n also_o as_o in_o like_a manner_n though_o timothy_n have_v no_o express_a commission_n to_o reject_v heretic_n after_o the_o second_o admonition_n yet_o because_o titus_n have_v that_o power_n so_o have_v 〈◊〉_d likewise_o in_o short_a titus_n have_v authority_n to_o receive_v accusation_n and_o to_o rebuke_v open_o as_o well_o as_o timothy_n have_v 1_o epist._n to_o tim._n 5._o and_o timothy_n to_o excommunicate_v the_o contumacious_a as_o well_o as_o titus_n have_v ch._n 3._o 10._o and_o both_o have_v power_n to_o ordain_v because_o one_o have_v chap._n iu._n be_v a_o answer_n to_o mr._n oh_o 4_o the_o chap._n the_o question_n here_o be_v whereas_o st._n paul_n give_v timothy_n those_o ample_a commission_n and_o instruction_n that_o we_o read_v of_o in_o his_o first_o epistle_n concern_v the_o government_n of_o the_o ephesian_a church_n some_o time_n after_o he_o have_v beseech_v he_o to_o abide_v still_o at_o ephesus_n when_o he_o go_v into_o macedonia_n 1_o epist._n 1._o 3_o what_o be_v that_o precise_a time_n of_o paul_n go_v into_o macedonia_n and_o beseech_v timothy_n to_o abide_v at_o ephesus_n in_o the_o tent._n nou._n follow_v bishop_n pearson_n i_o resolve_v this_o question_n thus_o that_o paul_n journey_n here_o speak_v of_o can_v not_o be_v mean_v of_o any_o of_o those_o mention_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v some_o other_o after_o his_o bid_n the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n farewell_o that_o come_v to_o jerusalem_n he_o be_v there_o make_v prisoner_n and_o thence_o carry_v to_o rome_n where_o he_o continue_v about_o 2_o year_n in_o bond_n that_o be_v at_o length_n release_v he_o return_v into_o the_o eastern_a part_n again_o visit_v the_o church_n and_o then_o as_o he_o pass_v out_o of_o asia_n into_o macedonia_n beseech_v timothy_n to_o abide_v at_o ephesus_n as_o the_o fix_a ruler_n or_o bishop_n of_o that_o church_n and_o short_o after_o dispatch_v the_o one_a epistle_n to_o he_o that_o paul_n himself_o some_o while_n after_o go_v back_o into_o italy_n and_o unto_o the_o utmost_a part_n of_o the_o west_n preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o be_v at_o length_n once_o more_o get_v unto_o rome_n be_v there_o imprison_v a_o second_o time_n when_o he_o write_v the_o second_o epistle_n to_o tim._n a_o little_a before_o he_o be_v behead_v we_o be_v now_o to_o consider_v mr._n oh_o objection_n against_o all_o this_o mr._n o._n to_o abide_v still_o do_v not_o imply_v a_o continue_a residence_n 122._o but_o may_v signify_v a_o short_a stay_n act._n 17._o 14_o 15._o by_o consequence_n he_o be_v not_o the_o fix_a bishop_n ruler_n of_o ephesus_n ans._n there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d here_o and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d act._n 17._o 14_o 15._o the_o former_a imply_v a_o continue_a stay_n at_o ephesus_n the_o latter_a only_o signify_v silas_n and_o timothy_n halt_n that_o be_v tarry_v behind_o paul_n at_o beraea_n beside_o we_o have_v no_o account_n of_o timothy_n sudden_a remove_n from_o ephesus_n but_o we_o have_v of_o timothy_n leave_v beraea_n soon_o after_o act._n 18._o 5._o 1_o thes._n 3._o 2._o last_o the_o order_n give_v unto_o timothy_n at_o ephesus_n be_v many_o and_o important_a which_o also_o require_v time_n to_o be_v execute_v which_o do_v not_o appear_v to_o have_v be_v the_o case_n of_o timothy_n at_o beraea_n mr._n o._n timothy_n stay_n there_o at_z ephesus_z be_v but_o short_a that_o be_v until_o the_o apostle_n come_v to_o he_o 1_o tim._n 3._o 14._o ch_n 4._o 13._o ans._n there_o be_v no_o colour_n of_o argument_n in_o this_o it_o be_v not_o say_v he_o must_v tarry_v no_o long_o there_o than_o till_o paul_n come_v to_o he_o nor_o can_v that_o be_v the_o meaning_n for_o than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o timothy_n be_v to_o give_v attendance_n to_o read_n to_o exhortation_n and_o to_o doctrine_n but_o till_o the_o apostle_n come_v to_o he_o which_o i_o hope_v mr._n o._n will_v not_o affirm_v beside_o paul_n be_v not_o certain_a of_o his_o go_v to_o ephesus_n short_o therefore_o he_o add_v 1_o tim._n 3._o 15_o if_o i_o tarry_v long_o etc._n etc._n from_o which_o passage_n i_o gather_v that_o paul_n at_o his_o first_o beseech_v of_o timothy_n to_o abide_v at_o ephesus_n think_v his_o instruction_n not_o full_a enough_o and_o therefore_o intend_v to_o see_v timothy_n short_o at_o ephesus_n and_o to_o furnish_v he_o with_o further_a order_n how_o he_o ought_v to_o behave_v himself_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n commit_v to_o he_o but_o because_o he_o suspect_v he_o may_v tarry_v long_o he_o therefore_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o send_v he_o this_o epistle_n all_o which_o show_v that_o timothy_n be_v design_v for_o the_o fix_a ruler_n of_o ephesus_n although_o the_o apostle_n resolve_v to_o visit_v he_o there_o short_o not_o to_o remove_v he_o thence_o but_o to_o give_v he_o full_a direction_n about_o the_o management_n of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n mr._n o._n he_o be_v not_o fix_v as_o resident_n at_o ephesus_n because_o the_o apostle_n afterward_o call_v he_o to_o rome_n 2_o tim._n 4._o 9_o 21._o ans._n i_o will_v take_v a_o opportunity_n by_o and_o by_o to_o discourse_n about_o residence_n where_o the_o weakness_n of_o this_o objection_n will_v full_o appear_v in_o the_o interim_n i_o will_v only_o acquaint_v the_o reader_n that_o according_a to_o mr._n oh_o own_o hypothesis_n it_o can_v not_o be_v less_o than_o between_o three_o and_o four_o year_n after_o the_o write_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n that_o paul_n send_v for_o 〈◊〉_d unto_o rome_n and_o according_a unto_o i_o about_o six_o year_n which_o be_v a_o considerable_a stay_n or_o residence_n in_o one_o place_n i_o say_v further_o that_o paul_n send_v for_o timothy_n to_o rome_n be_v no_o argument_n that_o timothy_n for_o ever_o quit_v that_o post_n that_o he_o return_v back_o to_o ephesus_n must_v be_v make_v appear_v from_o ecclefiastical_a history_n the_o scripture_n go_v no_o further_o in_o the_o account_n of_o paul_n and_o timothy_n than_o that_o in_o the_o second_o epistle_n sophronlus_fw-la or_o jerom_n scr_n witness_v that_o he_o be_v martyr_a at_o ephesus_n and_o photius_n 254._o acquaint_v we_o with_o the_o time_n and_o occasion_n viz._n at_o the_o detestable_a festival_n call_v 1041._o the_o catagogium_fw-la which_o timothy_n will_v have_v have_v abrogate_a bur._n last_o suppose_v timothy_n never_o return_v back_o to_o ephesus_n it_o be_v no_o consequence_n that_o he_o be_v not_o by_o paul_n constitute_v resident_a bishop_n ruler_n of_o ephesus_n as_o will_v afterward_o in_o these_o paper_n appear_v mr._n o._n object_n against_o the_o time_n assign_v in_o t._n n._n of_o paul_n 124._o go_v into_o 〈◊〉_d after_o his_o release_n from_o his_o first_o imprisonment_n at_o rome_n that_o be_v after_o the_o history_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n wherein_o no_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o this_o voyage_n as_o i_o assert_v against_o this_o i_o say_v mr._n o._n object_n that_o nothing_o can_v be_v conclude_v from_o luke_n silence_n in_o this_o point_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o do_v not_o mention_v all_o the_o journey_n of_o paul_n and_o timothy_n ans._n i_o ready_o grant_v that_o bare_a silence_n be_v no_o good_a proof_n without_o some_o other_o consideration_n to_o support_v it_o and_o i_o also_o grant_v that_o luke_n mention_n not_o all_o paul_n and_o timothy_n journey_n but_o i_o contend_v that_o he_o omit_v none_o of_o paul_n from_o the_o 13_o the_o chapter_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o any_o impartial_a man_n will_v believe_v if_o he_o careful_o read_v that_o part_n of_o the_o history_n and_o for_o proof_n of_o this_o i_o shall_v at_o present_a content_n myself_o with_o the_o acknowledgement_n and._n testimony_n of_o beza_n himself_o who_o thus_o write_v particular_o as_o to_o paul_n journey_n into_o macedonia_n ter_n omnino_fw-la vidit_fw-la macedoniam_fw-la paulus_n ut_fw-la ex_fw-la historiae_fw-la filo_fw-la apparet_fw-la quamvis_fw-la enim_fw-la non_fw-la omne_fw-la perscripserit_fw-la lucas_n ita_fw-la tamen_fw-la contextam_fw-la historiam_fw-la esse_fw-la apparet_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la plures_fw-la profectiones_fw-la in_o macedoniam_fw-la possint_fw-la 75._o constitui_fw-la paul_n see_v macedonia_n but_o thrice_o as_o
unto_o some_o certain_a place_n to_o preach_v the_o word_n but_o philip_n have_v no_o extraordinary_a call_n unto_o the_o office_n of_o a_o evangelist_n that_o i_o can_v meet_v with_o though_o he_o have_v extraordinary_a gift_n in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n for_o any_o thing_n i_o read_v philip_n be_v yet_o but_o a_o deacon_n it_o be_v then_o reasonable_a to_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v afterward_o appoint_v the_o resident_n 〈◊〉_d of_o caesarea_n mr._n o._n observe_v very_o true_o and_o i_o free_o acknowledge_v 144._o that_o i_o have_v no_o testimony_n at_o hand_n out_o of_o the_o father_n prove_v philip_n to_o have_v be_v the_o fix_a evangelist_n of_o caesarea_n but_o whereas_o the_o minister_n pretend_v that_o this_o philip_n die_v at_o hierapolis_n and_o by_o consequence_n be_v not_o the_o fix_a evangelist_n of_o caesarea_n cite_v for_o this_o eusebius_n e._n h._n l._n 3._o i_o be_o force_v again_o to_o expose_v his_o unfaithful_a represent_v author_n make_v they_o write_v what_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o they_o the_o historian_n in_o l._n 3._o c._n 31._o first_o speak_v of_o philip_n the_o apostle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 39_o one_o of_o the_o twelve_o who_o die_v at_o hierapolis_n but_o he_o affirm_v it_o not_o of_o philip_n the_o deacon_n or_o evangelist_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n 〈◊〉_d philippus_n apostolus_fw-la script_n in_o phrygia_n praedicat_fw-la evangelium_fw-la domini_fw-la jesus_n sepelitur_fw-la hierapoli_n cum_fw-la 〈◊〉_d bonorifice_n it_o be_v true_a euseb._n at_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o that_o chapter_n speak_v also_o of_o philip_n the_o evangelist_n and_o his_o daughter_n say_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o live_v with_o their_o father_n philip_n in_o caesarea_n but_o not_o a_o syllable_n of_o hierapolis_n nay_o here_o be_v a_o tolerable_a proof_n that_o eusebius_n think_v philip_n live_v and_o reside_v in_o 〈◊〉_d here_o than_o we_o have_v another_o instance_n of_o mr._n oh_o false_a deal_n with_o author_n mr._n o._n still_o contend_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v not_o resident_a bishop_n evangelist_n the_o apostle_n call_v they_o both_o 144._o away_o tit._n 3._o 12._o to_o the_o apostle_n titus_n come_v at_o nicopolis_n and_o after_o be_v send_v by_o paul_n to_o 〈◊〉_d 2_o tim_n 4._o 20._o and_o we_o hear_v no_o further_o of_o he_o it_o can_v be_v make_v appear_v that_o ever_o he_o return_v more_o to_o crete_n ans._n from_o scripture_n it_o can_v because_o the_o holy_a history_n script_n there_o end_v sc_n at_o titus_n go_v into_o dalmatia_n but_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n which_o mr._n o._n right_o appeal_v to_o in_o the_o like_a case_n tell_v we_o that_o titus_n die_v in_o crete_n what_o will_v any_o man_n expect_v more_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o eusebius_n assert_v the_o 〈◊〉_d to_o have_v be_v resident_n or_o unfixt_v minister_n in_o l._n 3._o c._n 37_o 38_o 39_o mr._n o._n maintain_v this_o latter_a opinion_n 〈◊〉_d testify_v that_o they_o 145._o preach_v christ_n to_o infidel_n ordain_v pastor_n and_o pass_v into_o other_o country_n and_o nation_n that_o they_o go_v far_o 〈◊〉_d their_o own_o house_n do_v the_o work_n of_o evangelist_n and_o diligent_o preach_v christ_n to_o such_o as_o have_v not_o yet_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o faith_n deliver_v to_o they_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n ordain_v other_o pastor_n and_o go_v into_o other_o country_n and_o nation_n ans._n true_a all_o this_o eusebius_n witness_v but_o it_o prove_v not_o mr._n oh_o point_n this_o many_o evangelist_n do_v for_o some_o time_n but_o be_v afterward_o fix_v in_o some_o certain_a place_n to_o govern_v particular_a church_n as_o appear_v from_o the_o example_n eusebius_n produce_v sc_n 〈◊〉_d clemens_n romanus_n polycarp_n and_o papias_n all_o which_o he_o assure_v we_o be_v the_o constant_a reside_a bishop_n of_o particular_a church_n euseb._n l._n 3._o c._n 39_o though_o they_o have_v be_v sometime_o before_o unfixt_v evangelist_n attend_v the_o apostle_n uncertain_a order_n as_o the_o necessity_n of_o religion_n occasional_o require_v and_o this_o be_v what_o i_o insist_v on_o in_o t._n n._n that_o evangelist_n be_v both_o fix_v and_o unfixt_v according_a as_o the_o apostle_n order_v they_o that_o therefore_o fixedness_n or_o unfixedness_n be_v not_o a_o proper_a note_n nor_o distinguish_a character_n of_o a_o evangelist_n he_o may_v be_v one_o or_o the_o other_o or_o both_o at_o different_a time_n as_o be_v manifest_a from_o eusebius_n though_o i_o deliver_v myself_o in_o t._n n._n to_o this_o effect_n mr._n o._n take_v no_o notice_n of_o it_o but_o urge_v again_o the_o old_a argument_n avoid_v what_o i_o observe_v out_o of_o eusebius_n in_o proof_n that_o his_o unfixt_v evangelist_n become_v afterward_o the_o fix_a bishop_n of_o church_n it_o remain_v then_o that_o evangelist_n many_o of_o they_o be_v according_a to_o eusebius_n fix_v minister_n which_o be_v all_o i_o be_o concern_v for_o and_o by_o consequence_n so_o may_v timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v another_o controversy_n be_v move_v about_o st._n mark_n whether_o 146._o he_o be_v a_o evangelist_n be_v the_o settle_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n ans._n i_o do_v ready_o grant_v that_o mark_n be_v a_o great_a while_n a_o unsettled_a minister_n wait_v on_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o by_o he_o dispatch_v up_o and_o down_o upon_o the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n though_o afterward_o he_o go_v or_o be_v send_v unto_o alexandria_n where_o he_o plant_v a_o church_n and_o govern_v it_o 24._o after_o who_o annianus_n undertake_v the_o administration_n and_o be_v by_o eusebius_n call_v the_o first_o bishop_n thereof_o which_o imply_v that_o 14._o mark_n be_v the_o evangelist_n of_o it_o the_o administrator_n of_o that_o church_n have_v not_o as_o yet_o perhaps_o receive_v the_o title_n of_o bishop_n as_o particular_o belong_v to_o he_o but_o mr._n o._n shake_v i_o off_o by_o object_v i_o may_v as_o well_o make_v peter_n a_o resident_n apostle_n because_o eusebius_n say_v that_o linus_n succeed_v he_o in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ans._n suppose_v peter_n be_v there_o so_o long_o as_o it_o be_v report_v of_o he_o i_o must_v profess_v i_o think_v he_o be_v the_o resident_n apostle_n of_o rome_n for_o there_o be_v man_n of_o learning_n and_o observation_n who_o will_v tell_v mr._n o._n that_o peter_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o apostle_n be_v wont_a to_o have_v the_o special_a care_n and_o oversight_n over_o some_o particular_a church_n or_o church_n beside_o their_o general_a power_n which_o extend_v unto_o all_o place_n of_o peter_n jerom_n testify_v ibique_fw-la romae_fw-la viginti_fw-la quinque_fw-la annos_fw-la cathedram_fw-la sacerdotalem_fw-la tenuit_fw-la petrus_n and_o i_o hope_v this_o father_n be_v of_o some_o credit_n and_o in_o esteem_n with_o the_o minister_n they_o will_v tell_v he_o that_o the_o remove_n from_o place_n to_o place_n and_o from_o one_o city_n or_o country_n to_o another_o be_v not_o of_o the_o essence_n of_o a_o apostle_n that_o they_o may_v if_o they_o think_v fit_a remove_v or_o else_o continue_v and_o fix_v that_o if_o a_o apostle_n upon_o some_o emergent_a occasion_n 〈◊〉_d to_o another_o place_n this_o prove_v not_o that_o he_o be_v not_o before_o his_o removal_n the_o settle_a minister_n of_o the_o former_a church_n no_o more_o than_o when_o a_o non-con_a minister_n leave_v his_o former_a congregation_n and_o run_v into_o a_o remote_a country_n adhere_v to_o a_o new_a one_o will_n mr._n o._n in_o this_o case_n deny_v that_o he_o be_v ever_o the_o settle_a minister_n of_o the_o former_a they_o will_v tell_v he_o that_o a_o apostle_n when_o he_o remove_v do_v still_o hold_v even_o in_o his_o absence_n the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o leave_v until_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o fix_v his_o successor_n or_o be_v by_o death_n prevent_v take_v any_o further_a care_n of_o it_o there_o want_v not_o example_n of_o this_o kind_n thus_o it_o be_v believe_v euodius_n succeed_v peter_n at_o antioch_n in_o the_o apostle_n life_n time_n and_o linus_n at_o rome_n after_o his_o death_n and_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n it_o be_v probable_a that_o annianus_n succeed_v mark_n though_o not_o with_o the_o same_o title_n and_o character_n but_o mr._n o._n have_v st._n chrysostom_n on_o his_o side_n 148._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n who_o go_v not_o about_o every_o where_o but_o only_o preach_v the_o gospel_n as_o priscilla_n and_o aquila_n etc._n etc._n he_o grant_v that_o the_o evangelist_n do_v not_o go_v about_o preach_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d every_o where_o as_o the_o apostle_n do_v but_o yet_o they_o travel_v up_o and_o down_o into_o divers_a place_n as_o the_o apostle_n appoint_v they_o distinguish_v forsooth_o between_o every_o where_o which_o belong_v to_o apostle_n and_o divers_a place_n which_o
of_o the_o title_n seem_v to_o argue_v the_o discontinuance_n of_o the_o office_n ans._n 1._o it_o be_v hold_v not_o without_o reason_n that_o the_o name_n apostle_n descend_v at_o least_o upon_o their_o next_o and_o immediate_a successor_n which_o some_o call_v secondary_a apostle_n the_o inseriour_a minister_n be_v indifferent_o call_v bishop_n or_o presbyter_n but_o in_o a_o little_a time_n the_o apostle_n successor_n lay_v aside_o that_o title_n of_o apostle_n out_o of_o modesty_n content_v themselves_o with_o that_o of_o bishop_n and_o the_o inferior_a minister_n with_o that_o of_o presbyter_n to_o this_o purpose_n theodoret_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 92._o there_o be_v evidence_n sufficient_a in_o the_o scripture_n of_o these_o secondary_a apostle_n such_o perhaps_o be_v james_n the_o just_a and_o 〈◊〉_d the_o apostle_n of_o the_o philippian_n titus_n and_o other_o be_v call_v apostle_n 2_o cor._n 8._o 23._o therefore_o it_o may_v be_v further_o observe_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n 〈◊〉_d they_o indifferent_o both_o apostle_n and_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o jerom_n 〈◊〉_d and_o salvian_n as_o mr._n b._n inform_v i_o it_o may_v not_o here_o be_v pass_v over_o that_o in_o after_o age_n the_o learned_a writer_n often_o call_v the_o apostle_n themselves_o by_o the_o name_n of_o bishop_n ephes._n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o in_o cyprian_n and_o hilary_n and_o in_o eusebius_n peter_n be_v reckon_v 6._o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o conformity_n to_o the_o language_n of_o their_o aug._n own_o time_n when_o bishop_n signify_v the_o supreme_a officer_n of_o a_o church_n this_o observation_n show_v clear_o that_o the_o apostolical_a and_o the_o episcopal_a office_n be_v the_o same_o in_o reality_n but_o i_o answer_v 11._o 2._o that_o the_o change_n of_o the_o title_n of_o the_o office_n can_v import_v the_o cease_n of_o the_o office_n caesar_n be_v emperor_n by_o the_o title_n of_o perpetual_a dictator_n augustus_n his_o successor_n by_o that_o of_o caesar_n and_o the_o follow_a emperor_n by_o those_o of_o caesar_n and_o augustus_n though_o caesar_n at_o length_n be_v appropriate_v to_o one_o 1._o as_o yet_o only_o design_v and_o name_v the_o emperor_n successor_n whatever_o be_v their_o title_n they_o be_v all_o emperor_n but_o to_o come_v near_a home_n and_o to_o instance_n in_o a_o matter_n more_o direct_o to_o our_o purpose_n at_o the_o reformation_n in_o scoltand_n the_o prelatical_a ruler_n of_o the_o church_n be_v style_v superintendent_o yet_o the_o office_n of_o bishop_n be_v not_o therefore_o change_v because_o the_o title_n be_v the_o superintendent_o have_v the_o same_o power_n to_o inspect_v the_o church_n in_o their_o own_o district_n as_o the_o bishop_n have_v to_o conclude_v the_o change_n of_o the_o name_n apostle_n into_o bishop_n be_v no_o prejudice_n against_o the_o episcopal_a power_n be_v the_o same_o as_o the_o apostolical_a be_v and_o succeed_v into_o its_o place_n it_o will_v again_o be_v object_v that_o since_o ordinary_a presbyter_n be_v 2._o confess_v on_o all_o hand_n to_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n why_o not_o then_o in_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o apostolical_a office_n sc_n the_o ordain_v and_o govern_v power_n ans._n the_o solution_n of_o this_o difficulty_n such_o as_o it_o be_v depend_v upon_o matter_n of_o fact_n sc_n how_o god_n be_v please_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o determine_v this_o point_n this_o be_v not_o the_o place_n to_o dispute_v the_o question_n whether_o the_o apostle_n convey_v their_o whole_a power_n and_o office_n unto_o every_o or_o to_o all_o presbyter_n it_o have_v i_o be_o in_o hope_n be_v clear_v in_o the_o negative_a both_o in_o these_o and_o my_o former_a paper_n but_o to_o the_o objection_n i_o reply_v that_o when_o a_o office_n be_v attend_v with_o variety_n of_o work_n it_o do_v not_o follow_v of_o necessity_n that_o he_o who_o succeed_v in_o one_o part_n of_o the_o office_n must_v be_v reckon_v to_o succeed_v in_o all_o it_o can_v be_v doubt_v but_o the_o apostle_n have_v it_o in_o their_o power_n to_o divide_v and_o put_v the_o several_a part_n of_o their_o office_n into_o several_a hand_n and_o we_o have_v a_o instance_n that_o they_o do_v so_o they_o make_v seven_o deacon_n unto_o who_o they_o commit_v the_o care_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o distribution_n of_o the_o public_a alm_n which_o be_v before_o in_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o but_o then_o no_o one_o will_v say_v that_o because_o the_o apostle_n confer_v upon_o these_o seven_o one_o part_n of_o their_o office_n that_o therefore_o they_o must_v be_v understand_v to_o have_v commit_v to_o they_o all_o the_o rest_n sc_n the_o power_n of_o ordination_n of_o government_n and_o of_o discipline_n by_o parity_n of_o reason_n though_o presbyter_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n and_o be_v by_o they_o ordain_v unto_o that_o part_n of_o the_o apostolical_a office_n viz._n minister_a in_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o they_o also_o receive_v the_o whole_a apostolical_a power_n that_o of_o ordination_n government_n and_o discipline_n it_o be_v further_o object_v that_o the_o apostolical_a power_n extend_v it_o 3._o self_n every_o where_o the_o evangelistical_a reach_v to_o divers_a place_n and_o country_n but_o it_o can_v be_v pretend_v that_o the_o episcopal_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v so_o large_a and_o as_o it_o be_v unlimited_a it_o be_v rather_o confine_v unto_o a_o certain_a compass_n or_o district_n as_o we_o plain_o see_v for_o which_o reason_n the_o bishop_n be_v not_o the_o apostle_n nor_o the_o evangelist_n successor_n ans._n it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o get_v over_o this_o small_a rub._n this_o unlimited_a power_n of_o the_o apostle_n may_v be_v reckon_v among_o their_o extraordinary_a and_o personal_a privilege_n and_o so_o do_v we_o no_o prejudice_n the_o office_n may_v be_v the_o same_o though_o the_o extent_n of_o power_n may_v be_v more_o in_o one_o than_o in_o another_o the_o bishop_n of_o eugubium_n be_v as_o true_o a_o bishop_n as_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o ptolemy_n be_v as_o real_o and_o to_o all_o intent_n and_o purpose_n king_n of_o egypt_n as_o alexander_n have_v be_v of_o that_o and_o many_o other_o vast_a kingdom_n and_o province_n and_o as_o he_o be_v real_o a_o king_n so_o he_o be_v real_o alexander_n successor_n also_o for_o who_o will_v say_v that_o william_n 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o will._n the_o conqueror_n successor_n because_o he_o succeed_v he_o not_o in_o the_o dukedom_n of_o normandy_n as_o well_o as_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n we_o see_v by_o these_o example_n that_o one_o may_v have_v several_a successor_n into_o several_a part_n of_o their_o jurisdiction_n how_o large_a soever_o the_o diocese_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o evangelist_n be_v yet_o the_o bishop_n may_v be_v their_o successor_n unto_o some_o part_n of_o their_o jurisdiction_n among_o the_o roman_n they_o who_o inherit_v any_o part_n of_o the_o decedent_n estate_n be_v they_o few_o or_o be_v they_o many_o be_v all_o call_v haeredes_fw-la and_o distinguish_v according_a to_o the_o proportion_n allot_v they_o hence_o we_o read_v of_o haeredes_fw-la ex_fw-la deunce_n ex_fw-la quadrante_fw-la ex_fw-la semuncia_fw-la ex_fw-la semisse_fw-la as_o well_o as_o haeres_fw-la ex_fw-la ass_n who_o inherit_v all_o but_o what_o if_o after_o all_o this_o every_o bishop_n power_n extend_v itself_o through_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v not_o in_o its_o own_o nature_n limit_v and_o fix_v to_o any_o one_o single_a district_n some_o have_v think_v so_o and_o upon_o good_a ground_n too_o after_o many_o other_o reason_n and_o evidence_n of_o the_o universal_a power_n of_o bishop_n give_v by_o mr._n b._n p._n 56._o it_o seem_v to_o 〈◊〉_d a_o strong_a argument_n for_o it_o that_o bishop_n in_o synod_n have_v ever_o exercise_v their_o power_n in_o other_o diocese_n as_o well_o as_o in_o their_o own_o i_o do_v not_o see_v by_o what_o authority_n bishop_n in_o council_n can_v take_v upon_o they_o to_o correct_v the_o miscarriage_n of_o particular_a bishop_n within_o their_o own_o diocese_n to_o remove_v the_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a to_o restore_v the_o unjust_o deprive_v to_o confirm_v the_o custom_n and_o polity_n of_o single_a church_n except_o on_o this_o one_o principle_n that_o every_o bishop_n be_v a_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a and_o have_v a_o inherent_a power_n over_o all_o the_o world_n and_o every_o where_o it_o be_v true_a it_o must_v at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v 〈◊〉_d that_o for_o peace_n and_o order_n sake_n and_o to_o the_o end_n the_o church_n may_v be_v certain_o take_v care_n of_o bishop_n be_v limit_v to_o some_o particular_a diocese_n as_o to_o the_o constant_a and_o ordinary_a administration_n of_o church_n affair_n and_o one_o bishop_n be_v not_o suffer_v to_o interlope_v in_o another_o district_n
without_o necessity_n nevertheless_o on_o extraordinary_a occasion_n such_o as_o apostasy_n heresy_n and_o schism_n the_o other_o bishop_n make_v use_v of_o their_o general_a power_n to_o rectify_v disorder_n even_o in_o those_o church_n where_o ordinary_o they_o have_v no_o jurisdiction_n every_o bishop_n than_o be_v a_o bishop_n every_o where_o beside_o the_o constant_a care_n of_o some_o particular_a church_n commit_v unto_o he_o but_o it_o will_v last_o be_v object_v that_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n 4._o be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d but_o itinerant_a officer_n shift_v from_o place_n to_o place_n as_o the_o exigence_n of_o the_o church_n and_o interest_n of_o the_o gospel_n require_v this_o the_o bishop_n do_v not_o pretend_v to_o neither_o can_v ans._n 1._o some_o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v fix_v or_o at_o least_o fix_v themselves_o thus_o james_n the_o apostle_n or_o at_o least_o a_o apostle_n be_v the_o constant_a reside_a perfect_a or_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n so_o be_v simeon_n after_o he_o so_o be_v peter_n at_o rome_n for_o 25_o year_n according_a to_o jerom._n so_o be_v john_n in_o asia_n for_o a_o long_a time_n so_o be_v timothy_n at_o ephesus_n and_o titus_n in_o crete_n but_o 2._o bishop_n be_v no_o otherwise_o fix_v than_o be_v the_o apostle_n i_o have_v show_v before_o that_o upon_o necessary_a occasion_n they_o interpose_v any_o where_o beside_o a_o bishop_n may_v in_o unconvert_v nation_n pass_v from_o one_o city_n and_o country_n to_o another_o and_o plant_v church_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v thus_o frumentius_n 19_o play_v the_o apostle_n in_o india_n be_v ordain_v bishop_n at_o 23._o alexandria_n in_o egypt_n by_o athanasius_n so_o do_v aidan_n in_o northumberland_n among_o the_o angles_n and_o mercian_n 6._o 3._o it_o be_v so_o difficult_a a_o matter_n to_o define_v exact_o what_o residence_n be_v and_o when_o a_o man_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v fix_v how_o oft_o how_o long_o and_o on_o what_o occasion_n he_o may_v be_v allow_v to_o be_v absent_a and_o yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v the_o settle_a minister_n of_o a_o church_n that_o i_o think_v no_o man_n alive_a can_v with_o any_o tolerable_a certainty_n prononuce_v a_o person_n not_o to_o have_v be_v the_o resident_n ruler_n or_o bishop_n of_o a_o church_n because_o he_o find_v he_o employ_v in_o some_o other_o place_n upon_o some_o extraordinary_a service_n of_o the_o church_n i_o make_v no_o difficulty_n to_o affirm_v that_o when_o and_o as_o oft_o as_o any_o emergent_a necessity_n require_v it_o and_o his_o superior_a command_n he_o a_o fix_a resident_n officer_n may_v leave_v his_o flock_n for_o some_o time_n and_o attend_v the_o business_n which_o he_o be_v thus_o '_o special_o call_v to_o and_o yet_o still_o he_o be_v their_o fix_a and_o settle_a minister_n if_o paul_n call_v timothy_n to_o he_o at_o rome_n from_o ephesus_n and_o titus_n from_o crete_n it_o will_v not_o follow_v they_o be_v not_o the_o fix_a and_o resident_n ruler_n bishop_n of_o those_o church_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v before_o commit_v to_o they_o no_o more_o than_o that_o the_o british_a bishop_n who_o by_o order_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n be_v not_o the_o fix_a resident_n bishop_n of_o the_o british_a church_n or_o that_o the_o member_n of_o the_o assembly_n of_o divine_n be_v not_o the_o settle_a rector_n vicar_n or_o lecturer_n of_o their_o respective_a congregation_n though_o they_o be_v a_o good_a while_n absent_a from_o they_o and_o sit_v at_o westminster_n 4._o one_o may_v be_v the_o fix_a minister_n of_o a_o church_n and_o yet_o afterward_o remove_v to_o another_o place_n and_o settle_v there_o i_o suppose_v my_o neighbour_n mr._n b._n have_v be_v the_o fix_a minister_n of_o some_o congregation_n in_o the_o west_n of_o england_n before_o he_o settle_v here_o among_o we_o so_o that_o if_o for_o some_o important_a reason_n paul_n have_v quite_o remove_v timothy_n from_o ephesus_n and_o titus_n from_o crete_n appoint_v tichycus_n in_o the_o room_n of_o the_o former_a 2_o tim._n 4._o 12._o and_o artemas_n to_o succeed_v the_o latter_a tit._n 3._o 12._o this_o will_v not_o evince_v that_o timothy_n be_v never_o the_o fix_a ruler_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n or_o titus_n of_o crete_n to_o draw_v towards_o a_o conclusion_n all_o alterable_a circumstance_n such_o as_o extraordinary_a divine_a gift_n different_a title_n largeness_n or_o extent_n of_o power_n over_o all_o or_o very_o many_o city_n and_o country_n and_o unfixedness_n as_o to_o any_o one_o city_n or_o province_n or_o whatever_o else_o of_o this_o kind_n may_v be_v allege_v make_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o apostolical_a or_o evangelistical_a and_o the_o episcopal_a power_n it_o be_v the_o ordination_n which_o conferr_v the_o office_n and_o the_o power_n not_o the_o fixedness_n or_o unfixedness_n of_o the_o ordainer_n it_o be_v the_o power_n of_o ordination_n give_v unto_o apostle_n evangelist_n and_o bishop_n which_o enable_v they_o to_o ordain_v other_o not_o any_o alterable_a circumstance_n which_o be_v observe_v in_o any_o of_o '_o they_o in_o a_o word_n that_o ordinary_a officer_n may_v succeed_v extraordinary_a officer_n understand_v extraordinary_n in_o the_o second_o signification_n before_o lay_v down_o must_v needs_o be_v confess_v by_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o i_o mean_v the_o presbyterian_o they_o affirm_v and_o believe_v that_o they_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n in_o the_o office_n of_o minister_a in_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n of_o ordain_v govern_v and_o exercise_v the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n with_o what_o front_n then_o can_v any_o of_o they_o deny_v that_o ordinary_a officer_n and_o such_o at_o this_o day_n be_v they_o at_o the_o best_a may_v succeed_v extraordinary_a one_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o a_o ordinary_a office_n or_o with_o what_o colour_n can_v they_o pretend_v that_o fix_v officer_n such_o be_v they_o themselves_o now_o as_o they_o believe_v can_v succeed_v those_o who_o be_v unfixt_v that_o be_v the_o apostle_n so_o that_o these_o quirk_n of_o extraordinary_a and_o unsettled_a officer_n be_v devise_v mere_o to_o disguise_v the_o truth_n and_o gull_v the_o simple_a part_n of_o mankind_n into_o schism_n and_o error_n the_o appendix_n mr._n o._n think_v he_o press_v very_o hard_a upon_o i_o when_o upon_o 142._o my_o suppose_v evangelist_n to_o be_v a_o species_n of_o church-officer_n distinct_a from_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n in_o eph._n 4._o 11._o i_o must_v be_v force_v to_o deny_v the_o diocesan_n bishop_n to_o be_v the_o pastor_n of_o their_o 〈◊〉_d church_n contrary_a to_o the_o prayer_n in_o the_o ember-week_n ans._n the_o good_a man_n have_v i_o fear_v wilful_o forget_v what_o i_o discourse_v about_o pastor_n in_o t._n n._n to_o this_o effect_n that_o in_o scripture_n pastor_n be_v a_o common_a name_n give_v to_o superior_a and_o to_o inferior_a officer_n in_o the_o church_n as_o minister_v also_o be_v here_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n it_o can_v mean_v none_o but_o the_o ordinary_a teacher_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n by_o the_o figure_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d import_v the_o ordinary_a pres-byters_a for_o which_o reason_n pastor_n be_v twice_o together_o leave_v out_o 1_o cor._n 12._o 28_o 29._o in_o after_o age_n it_o by_o degree_n come_v to_o signify_v bishop_n at_o least_o principal_o they_o and_o so_o as_o i_o reckon_v it_o be_v take_v in_o this_o sense_n in_o the_o ember-week_n prayer_n bishop_n and_o pastor_n there_o signify_v the_o same_o church-officer_n i_o say_v perhaps_o for_o though_o i_o will_v not_o assure_o affirm_v that_o by_o pastor_n in_o that_o collect_n be_v mean_v the_o presbyter_n who_o assist_v at_o ordination_n and_o examine_v the_o candidate_n for_o order_n and_o lay_v on_o hand_n with_o the_o bishop_n yet_o the_o prayer_n be_v capable_a of_o that_o sense_n the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n that_o be_v the_o bishop_n and_o the_o assist_v presbyter_n but_o mr._n o._n add_v if_o the_o rector_n say_v they_o be_v both_o pastor_n and_o evangelist_n he_o confound_v those_o officer_n which_o the_o apostle_n distinguish_v ans._n if_o what_o i_o say_v just_a now_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a reply_n hereunto_o i_o add_v that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n may_v have_v distinct_a office_n and_o the_o distinct_a title_n belong_v to_o those_o office_n john_n be_v a_o apostle_n and_o a_o evangelist_n every_o apostle_n be_v a_o prophet_n be_v a_o evangelist_n be_v a_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o apostle_n have_v all_o the_o ministerial_a 11._o power_n and_o so_o have_v evangelist_n all_o the_o power_n which_o their_o inferior_a officer_n have_v they_o be_v pastor_n and_o teacher_n nor_o be_v this_o a_o confound_a the_o officer_n because_o the_o proposition_n be_v not_o convertible_a though_o every_o bishop_n or_o evangelist_n be_v a_o pastor_n also_o and_o teacher_n
who_o exercise_v their_o ministry_n among_o you_o blameless_o brethren_n etc._n etc._n all_o that_o need_v be_v answer_v hereunto_o be_v 1._o clement_n manifest_o teach_v elsewhere_o that_o the_o schism_n arise_v on_o the_o account_n of_o one_o or_o two_o person_n p._n 62._o it_o be_v say_v he_o a_o shame_n a_o arrant_a shame_n and_o unworthy_a a_o christian_n conversation_n that_o the_o ancient_a and_o most_o firm_o establish_v church_n of_o corinth_n shall_v raise_v sedition_n against_o the_o presbyter_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o one_o or_o two_o person_n that_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n among_o they_o about_o their_o bishop_n that_o generous_a person_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o the_o presbyter_n be_v involve_v in_o the_o controversy_n and_o by_o consequence_n that_o some_o of_o they_o be_v desert_v and_o lay_v aside_o by_o those_o of_o the_o people_n who_o have_v a_o aversion_n to_o the_o bishop_n that_o generous_a person_n so_o oft_o mention_v as_o well_o as_o to_o some_o of_o the_o presbyter_n who_o stick_v close_o to_o he_o 2._o it_o may_v reasonable_o be_v think_v that_o the_o two_o person_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v the_o bishop_n in_o possession_n and_o the_o other_o who_o the_o corinthian_n will_v have_v advance_v into_o his_o 〈◊〉_d in_o short_a if_o 〈◊〉_d if_o what_o on_o this_o head_n have_v be_v offer_v for_o the_o clear_n the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o epistle_n which_o to_o we_o at_o this_o distance_n be_v dark_a enough_o be_v of_o any_o moment_n it_o may_v then_o be_v allow_v that_o clement_n have_v intimate_v that_o there_o be_v at_o corinth_n a_o prelatical_a bishop_n and_o that_o the_o reason_n why_o he_o make_v no_o plain_a mention_n of_o he_o but_o be_v force_v himself_o to_o interpose_v in_o procure_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n be_v the_o prejudices_fw-la a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o presbyter_n and_o people_n have_v conceive_v against_o their_o bishop_n who_o be_v 〈◊〉_d unable_a by_o his_o own_o authority_n to_o allay_v the_o heat_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o and_o for_o that_o cause_n be_v advise_v by_o clement_n voluntary_o to_o surrender_v his_o office_n and_o depart_v it_o be_v not_o a_o uncommon_a thing_n for_o author_n to_o comprehend_v three_o order_n of_o church-officer_n in_o two_o word_n or_o at_o least_o to_o mention_v two_o order_n only_o when_o yet_o they_o acknowledge_v a_o three_o this_o dichotomy_n be_v to_o be_v meet_v with_o in_o the_o scripture_n itself_o the_o three_o officer_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n be_v frequent_o express_v by_o priest_n and_o 〈◊〉_d wherein_o 〈◊〉_d highpriest_n who_o without_o controversy_n be_v a_o three_o be_v include_v 〈◊〉_d himself_o in_o this_o epistle_n take_v notice_n that_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n come_v out_o of_o abraham_n 41._o 〈◊〉_d mean_v the_o highpriest_n also_o as_o i_o presume_v will_v not_o be_v deny_v for_o he_o also_o come_v out_o of_o the_o loin_n of_o abraham_n clemens_n alexand_n in_o his_o 〈◊〉_d cite_v by_o mr._n o._n speak_v there_o only_o of_o the_o two_o order_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n epist._n and_o yet_o elsewhere_o he_o reckon_v up_o express_o the_o bishop_n also_o with_o the_o other_o two_o in_o the_o former_a place_n 〈◊〉_d presbyter_n must_v comprehend_v bishop_n at_o least_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v exclude_v though_o the_o author_n there_o omit_v they_o so_o 〈◊〉_d in_o his_o apologetic_n comprehend_v bishop_n and_o presbyter_n under_o one_o common_a name_n seniores_fw-la yet_o he_o 〈◊〉_d distinguish_v the_o three_o order_n in_o lib._n de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la c._n 17._o optatus_n milevit_fw-la a_o 66._o hundred_o time_n over_o acknowledge_v the_o three_o order_n yet_o once_o he_o content_v himself_o to_o express_v they_o in_o two_o word_n only_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n there_o be_v say_v he_o in_o the_o place_n cite_v on_o the_o margin_n quatuor_fw-la genera_fw-la 〈◊〉_d four_o order_n of_o man_n in_o the_o church_n but_o he_o sum_v they_o up_o in_o three_o word_n viz._n bishop_n deacon_n and_o the_o faithful_a it_o may_v deserve_v observation_n that_o at_o this_o time_n of_o the_o day_n and_o with_o optatus_n ordinary_o bishop_n signify_v the_o prelate_n of_o a_o church_n shall_v i_o then_o be_v allow_v hence_o to_o infer_v there_o be_v either_o no_o presbyter_n or_o no_o prelatical_a bishop_n according_a to_o this_o father_n judgement_n because_o forsooth_o he_o here_o mention_n they_o not_o distinct_o it_o can_v be_v fair_o collect_v hence_o as_o every_o one_o 〈◊〉_d this_o be_v manifest_a that_o optatus_n in_o those_o two_o word_n bishop_n and_o deacon_n must_v understand_v the_o three_o order_n bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n else_o he_o lose_v one_o of_o his_o four_o order_n of_o man_n in_o the_o church_n beside_o say_v here_o sicut_fw-la supra_fw-la dixi_fw-la he_o refer_v we_o backward_o to_o p._n 16._o and_o p._n 51._o in_o both_o which_o place_n he_o mention_n 〈◊〉_d bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n wherefore_o the_o premise_n consider_v it_o be_v reasonable_a to_o believe_v that_o clemens_n romanus_n likewise_o do_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n express_v the_o three_o office_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d church_n in_o two_o word_n comprehend_v the_o prelate_n in_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n it_o ought_v not_o here_o to_o be_v forget_v what_o st._n chrysostom_n have_v observe_v 〈◊〉_d of_o old_a be_v call_v bishop_n also_o and_o 1._o 〈◊〉_d for_o in_o deed_n presbyter_n in_o some_o thing_n resemble_v both_o they_o minister_v like_o deacon_n unto_o the_o bishop-whilst_a he_o officiate_n and_o be_v subject_a unto_o he_o as_o the_o other_o be_v but_o they_o minister_v in_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bishop_n do_v and_o have_v under_o he_o the_o oversight_n of_o some_o part_n of_o the_o flock_n for_o which_o reason_n they_o may_v not_o incongruous_o be_v call_v bishop_n but_o blundel_n and_o his_o follower_n i_o remember_v to_o reconcile_v unto_o their_o own_o hypothesis_n the_o different_a way_n of_o the_o father_n reckon_v up_o the_o ministerial_a order_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n assert_n that_o sometime_o they_o conform_v their_o language_n to_o the_o scripture_n and_o apostolical_a age_n at_o other_o time_n to_o their_o own_o custom_n and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n in_o the_o former_a case_n they_o use_v the_o dichotomy_n mention_v only_a presbyter_n or_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n in_o the_o latter_a they_o divide_v they_o into_o three_o rank_n bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o deacon_n but_o this_o device_n will_v not_o do_v their_o work_n and_o must_v be_v lay_v aside_o for_o the_o follow_a reason_n 1._o st._n cyprian_n against_o who_o testimony_n for_o episopacy_n this_o distinction_n be_v principal_o level_v and_o frame_v though_o he_o often_o fall_v into_o the_o dichotomy_n yet_o assert_n the_o divine_a right_n of_o bishop_n cum_fw-la 33._o hoc_fw-la igitur_fw-la sicut_fw-la omnis_fw-la actus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la per_fw-la eosdem_fw-la praepositos_fw-la gubernetur_fw-la divina_fw-la lege_fw-la fundatum_fw-la sit_fw-la the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n by_o bishop_n be_v say_v he_o found_v upon_o a_o divine_a law_n that_o the_o praepositi_fw-la here_o be_v mean_v bishop_n be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v of_o if_o we_o look_v backward_o unto_o the_o forego_n part_n of_o this_o epistle_n he_o begin_v it_o thus_o our_o lord_n who_o precept_n we_o ought_v to_o reverence_n and_o observe_v establish_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o church_n affair_n say_v etc._n etc._n and_o again_o he_o add_v hence_o the_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n and_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n pass_v through_o the_o course_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o succession_n so_o that_o the_o church_n be_v establish_v on_o bishop_n and_o every_o act_n of_o the_o church_n be_v govern_v per_fw-la eosdem_fw-la praepositos_fw-la by_o the_o same_o praepositi_fw-la that_o be_v bishop_n if_o then_o bishop_n be_v by_o divine_a right_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o cyprian_a he_o must_v speak_v in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o apostolical_a age_n where_o the_o divine_a right_a end_n as_o well_o as_o his_o own_o when_o he_o reckon_v up_o the_o three_o distinct_a order_n of_o bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n but_o of_o this_o see_v more_o in_o mr._n dodwell_n 10_o cypr._n dissertation_n nor_o can_v these_o praepositi_fw-la and_o episcopi_fw-la be_v understand_v of_o presbyter_n for_o cyp._n whatever_o any_o may_v fancy_v of_o praepositi_fw-la never_o call_v presbyter_n bishop_n nor_o can_v he_o conformable_o to_o his_o own_o write_n he_o profess_v thus_o of_o himself_o and_o other_o bishop_n neq_n 229._o enim_fw-la quisquam_fw-la nostrum_fw-la episcopum_fw-la se_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la constituit_fw-la none_o of_o we_o make_v himself_o a_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n but_o if_o the_o presbyter_n be_v bishop_n than_o cyprian_n be_v a_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n 2._o optatus_n in_o the_o same_o breath_n in_o one_o
write_v in_o the_o plural_a town_n and_o country_n and_o of_o christian_a worship_n in_o general_n or_o indefinite_o must_v here_o intend_v all_o christian_n assemble_v in_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o it_o may_v as_o well_o hence_o be_v conclude_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o numerical_a congregation_n or_o altar_n in_o the_o world_n as_o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o in_o the_o bishop_n church_n upon_o the_o whole_a matter_n the_o point_n be_v no_o manner_n of_o way_n prove_v from_o justin_n martyr_n as_o for_o st._n cyprian_n who_o condemn_v the_o set_n up_o altar_n against_o altar_n it_o can_v thence_o be_v gather_v that_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n have_v but_o one_o numerical_a altar_n what_o this_o father_n blame_v be_v set_v up_o a_o altar_n against_o the_o bishop_n altar_n in_o opposition_n to_o it_o not_o in_o subordination_n to_o and_o communion_n with_o it_o it_o be_v true_a here_o what_o our_o lord_n speak_v on_o another_o occasion_n he_o that_o be_v not_o against_o the_o bishop_n be_v for_o he_o and_o he_o that_o be_v not_o with_o the_o bishop_n be_v against_o he_o in_o st._n cyprian_n time_n there_o be_v several_a not_o oratory_n only_o but_o 〈◊〉_d stately_a and_o magnificent_a church_n in_o the_o same_o city_n and_o within_o the_o limit_n of_o one_o bishop_n jurisdiction_n so_o optatus_n milevita●us_n relate_v post_fw-la persecuit_fw-la 16._o onem_fw-la apud_fw-la cirtam_fw-la quia_fw-la basilica_n necdum_fw-la sueram_fw-la restituta_fw-la in_o domum_fw-la urbani_n carisi_fw-la consederunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n many_o traditor_n afterward_o turn_v donatist_n bishop_n meet_v the_o house_n of_o urbanus_fw-la 〈◊〉_d after_o the_o persecution_n 〈◊〉_d cirta_n because_o the_o temple_n be_v not_o yet_o restore_v etc._n etc._n now_o cirta_n be_v a_o episcopal_n see_v in_o cyprians'ss_a time_n and_o crescens_n be_v bishop_n of_o it_o ox._n and_o the_o persecution_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v that_o of_o dioclesian_n wherein_o these_o temple_n be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o christian_n they_o must_v then_o have_v be_v build_v before_o that_o emperor_n time_n it_o follow_v hence_o that_o at_o cirta_n the_o christian_n have_v several_a church_n before_o dioclesian_n reign_v that_o be_v not_o long_o after_o cyprian_a even_o in_o the_o three_o age_n therefore_o there_o be_v in_o the_o cyprianic_n age_n several_a congregat●●●●●in_n in_o the_o same_o city_n and_o episcopal_a church_n and_o consequent_o several_a 〈◊〉_d for_o no_o man_n can_v think_v that_o among_o these_o basilicae_fw-la these_o magnificent_a church_n that_o one_o only_o have_v a_o altar_n and_o so_o from_o the_o whole_a it_o may_v be_v gather_v that_o the_o erect_v altar_n against_o altar_n condemn_v by_o cyprian_a be_v not_o the_o erect_v more_o numerical_a altar_n than_o one_o in_o a_o episcopal_a church_n but_o erect_v they_o or_o any_o one_o of_o they_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o bishop_n this_o father_n than_o do_v not_o favour_n mr._n mede_n conjecture_n at_o all_o the_o premise_n due_o consider_v i_o think_v igantius_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d one_o altar_n be_v right_o interpret_v by_o i_o since_o it_o be_v make_v so_o manifest_a that_o his_o bishop_n be_v both_o prelatical_a and_o diocesan_n i_o need_v not_o then_o trouble_v myself_o any_o further_a about_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o other_o slight_a passage_n object_v 〈◊〉_d i_o out_o of_o that_o father_n since_o they_o must_v all_o some_o way_n or_o other_o be_v reconcile_v with_o this_o hypothesis_n and_o i_o hope_v i_o be_v not_o very_o wide_a of_o the_o truth_n in_o the_o tentamen_fw-la novum_n chap._n iii_o of_o st._n mark_n the_o evangelist_n founder_n of_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n i_o have_v produce_v the_o testimony_n of_o eusebius_n hist._n lib._n 2._o ch_n 16_o 17._o in_o proof_n of_o a_o multitude_n of_o christian_n at_o alexandria_n about_o the_o time_n that_o philo_n the_o jew_n write_v his_o treatise_n de_fw-fr vita_fw-la contemplativa_fw-la which_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o claudius_n the_o emperor_n or_o beginning_n of_o nero_n reign_n near_o fifty_o year_n after_o christ_n mr._n o._n except_v against_o the_o testimony_n as_o follow_v that_o this_o passage_n of_o eusebius_n overthrow_v the_o notion_n of_o the_o 18._o learned_a assertor_n of_o episcopacy_n that_o a_o diocese_n be_v the_o low_a species_n of_o a_o church_n that_o eusebius_n speak_v of_o church_n in_o the_o plural_a that_o therefore_o there_o must_v be_v bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o not_o one_o bishop_n only_o that_o mark_n be_v a_o evangelist_n that_o be_v a_o extraordinary_a officer_n in_o that_o church_n that_o annianus_n mark_n be_v successor_n be_v not_o a_o bishop_n of_o a_o superior_a order_n but_o a_o honourable_a precedent_n in_o their_o assembly_n and_o a_o moderator_n in_o their_o synod_n without_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n over_o his_o colleague_n ans._n i_o be_o not_o concern_v in_o the_o private_a opinion_n of_o modern_a author_n who_o assert_v a_o diocese_n to_o be_v the_o low_a species_n of_o a_o church_n nor_o will_v i_o trouble_v myself_o to_o show_v how_o they_o limit_v their_o notion_n and_o explain_v themselves_o in_o that_o point_n nor_o whether_o mr._n o._n fair_o deduce_v his_o consequence_n from_o that_o passage_n of_o eusebius_n 〈◊〉_d therefore_o there_o must_v be_v bishop_n not_o one_o bishop_n only_o of_o alexandria_n let_v the_o assertor_n of_o this_o notion_n see_v to_o it_o mr._n oh_o reason_v such_o as_o it_o be_v affect_v not_o i_o nor_o my_o hypothesis_n it_o be_v my_o firm_a persuasion_n that_o a_o single_a congregation_n as_o well_o as_o diocese_n be_v even_o in_o scripture_n call_v a_o church_n only_o let_v it_o be_v observe_v mr._n o._n grant_n that_o there_o be_v according_a to_o eusebius_n several_a church_n or_o congregation_n in_o alexandria_n but_o how_o he_o will_v evince_v there_o be_v several_a bishop_n there_o i_o be_o yet_o to_o seek_v it_o be_v moreover_o suppose_v that_o mark_n be_v a_o evangelist_n or_o a_o extraordinary_a officer_n and_o what_o then_o still_o annianus_n a_o ordinary_a one_o may_v succeed_v he_o in_o the_o ordinary_a office_n of_o govern_v a_o diocesan_n church_n see_v part_n the_o first_o chapter_n the_o five_o and_o though_o mark_n be_v a_o evangelist_n a_o extraordinary_a officer_n which_o mr._n o._n must_v confess_v and_o have_v power_n over_o all_o the_o presbyter_n there_o yet_o say_v mr._n o._n annianus_n be_v not_o a_o bishop_n of_o a_o superior_a order_n with_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n over_o his_o colleague_n but_o a_o honourable_a precedent_n or_o moderator_n in_o the_o synod_n but_o this_o be_v only_a mr._n o.'s_n singular_a conceit_n we_o be_v in_o the_o present_a controversy_n to_o be_v guide_v by_o what_o eusebius_n tell_v we_o that_o annianus_n succeed_v mark_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o 24._o church_n of_o alexandria_n can_v any_o one_o understand_v less_o thereby_o than_o that_o annianus_n receive_v the_o same_o and_o all_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n that_o mark_v have_v in_o short_a i_o can_v discern_v mr._n o._n have_v advance_v any_o thing_n against_o i_o or_o lay_v his_o own_o sentiment_n so_o close_o together_o as_o to_o be_v consistent_a with_o themselves_o from_o the_o acts._n four_o the_o therapeutae_n compose_v hymn_n of_o divers_a kind_n in_o metre_n which_o the_o christian_n do_v not_o till_o afterward_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o antanini_fw-la five_o the_o therapeutae_n spread_v themselves_o throughout_o the_o world_n and_o be_v many_o in_o egypt_n but_o the_o christian_o few_o whereunto_o it_o may_v be_v reply_v first_o the_o christian_n expound_v the_o law_n allegorical_o as_o be_v manifest_a from_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n and_o some_o passage_n in_o st._n paul_n other_o epistle_n and_o beside_o though_o the_o jew_n do_v endeavour_v to_o improve_v the_o law_n by_o some_o allegorical_a deduction_n from_o it_o yet_o they_o hold_v primary_o unto_o the_o literal_a sense_n and_o according_o observe_v the_o law_n whereas_o the_o christian_n reject_v it_o in_o the_o literal_a sense_n and_o adhere_v only_o to_o the_o allegorical_a this_o then_o prove_v the_o therapeutae_n to_o be_v christian_n rather_o than_o jew_n second_o it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v then_o new_a and_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n of_o a_o late_a date_n they_o can_v not_o in_o any_o reason_n be_v call_v ancient_n nevertheless_o philo_n here_o mean_v the_o write_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o be_v out_o of_o controversy_n ancient_n and_o which_o the_o christian_n even_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n make_v frequent_a use_n of_o they_o may_v proper_o enough_o be_v call_v the_o christian_n ancient_a author_n beside_o though_o philo_n this_o must_v be_v own_v believe_v the_o therapeutae_n to_o be_v a_o sect_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o because_o they_o be_v conversant_a in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n thence_o collect_v that_o they_o
when_o their_o record_n have_v be_v destroy_v by_o the_o saracen_n it_o must_v then_o rest_v upon_o the_o credit_n of_o 〈◊〉_d himself_o alone_o and_o what_o that_o be_v will_v appear_v by_o and_o by_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n this_o tale_n of_o 〈◊〉_d must_v not_o pass_v be_v write_v by_o one_o who_o live_v at_o so_o great_a a_o distance_n of_o time_n from_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n deliver_v by_o he_o without_o any_o other_o know_v ancient_a author_n to_o support_v he_o beside_o he_o be_v a_o obscure_a writer_n pop_v up_o into_o the_o world_n to_o serve_v a_o cause_n and_o therefore_o can_v merit_v belief_n second_o 〈◊〉_d differ_v from_o many_o author_n of_o more_o unquestionable_a authority_n than_o himself_o he_o differ_v from_o ignatius_n who_o affirm_v that_o presbyter_n ought_v to_o do_v nothing_o without_o the_o bishop_n not_o baptise_v not_o marry_o not_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n without_o the_o bishop_n but_o according_a to_o 〈◊〉_d they_o ordain_v without_o he_o he_o differ_v from_o eusebius_n so_o far_o at_o least_o as_o to_o relate_v what_o eusebius_n know_v nothing_o of_o it_o be_v very_o strange_a that_o eusebius_n so_o diligent_a and_o so_o exact_a a_o historian_n so_o curious_a and_o inquisitive_a a_o searcher_n into_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o most_o eminent_a church_n from_o their_o first_o plantation_n particular_o this_o of_o alexandria_n shall_v not_o have_v discover_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o presbyter_n ordain_v their_o bishop_n and_o one_o another_o that_o he_o that_o have_v acquaint_v we_o with_o the_o name_n of_o all_o the_o patriarch_n from_o mark_n to_o alexander_n the_o precise_a order_n of_o their_o succession_n the_o year_n when_o every_o bishop_n succeed_v in_o what_o emperor_n reign_n it_o be_v and_o sundry_a other_o remarkable_a thing_n which_o happen_v in_o that_o church_n shall_v be_v whole_o silent_a and_o ignorant_a of_o this_o constitution_n of_o st._n mark_n more_o over_o 〈◊〉_d say_v that_o mark_n write_v the_o gospel_n which_o bear_v his_o name_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o nero_n reign_n but_o eusebius_n affirm_v it_o be_v do_v in_o the_o day_n of_o claudius_n nero_n 15._o predecessor_n eutychius_n tell_v we_o that_o mark_n be_v slay_v in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o nero_n eusebius_n not_o till_o the_o eight_o evang._n at_o soon_a he_o differ_v from_o st._n jerom_n too_o who_o report_n that_o all_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v write_v in_o greek_a except_o the_o gospel_n of_o matthew_n but_o eutychius_n will_v have_v it_o that_o mark_n write_v he_o in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n brief_o than_o he_o differ_v from_o some_o author_n quote_v by_o selden_n himself_o in_o who_o he_o read_v 14_o of_o three_o presbyter_n seven_o deacon_n and_o eleven_o other_o 〈◊〉_d officer_n of_o what_o character_n be_v not_o say_v whereas_o eutychius_n mention_n twelve_o only_a and_o all_o those_o presbyter_n on_o these_o account_n than_o he_o be_v of_o very_o little_a credit_n three_o he_o relate_v many_o thing_n in_o his_o annal_n whereof_o these_o origines_fw-la be_v a_o part_n against_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o approve_a history_n he_o make_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a to_o have_v consist_v of_o 2048._o bishop_n which_o be_v not_o credible_a he_o say_v peter_n be_v crucify_v in_o the_o twenty_o second_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o he_o reckon_v origen_n a_o bishop_n fouthly_a even_o in_o these_o origines_fw-la he_o be_v not_o at_o one_o with_o himself_o he_o write_v that_o mark_n go_v unto_o barca_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n that_o then_o claudius_n caesar_n die_v and_o nero_n succeed_v he_o that_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o nero_n peter_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n write_v the_o gospel_n of_o mark_n with_o mark_n in_o the_o roman_a tongue_n and_o in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o yet_o that_o mark_n be_v slay_v at_o alexandria_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o nero._n but_o if_o mark_n be_v martyr_a at_o alexandria_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o nero_n it_o can_v be_v that_o he_o be_v at_o rome_n with_o peter_n in_o nero_n reign_n and_o join_v with_o he_o in_o write_v the_o gospel_n five_o eutychius_n story_n seem_v most_o improbable_a and_o in_o my_o judgement_n overthrow_v its_o self_n for_o if_o the_o presbyter_n have_v the_o power_n first_o of_o choose_v and_o then_o ordain_v one_o from_o among_o themselves_o to_o be_v patriarch_n and_o after_o that_o ordain_v the_o new_a presbyter_n also_o to_o what_o purpose_n be_v a_o bishop_n create_v be_v he_o to_o be_v a_o bishop_n of_o clouts_n to_o sit_v in_o his_o chair_n and_o grave_o to_o look_v on_o whilst_o the_o eleven_o presbyter_n choose_v and_o ordain_v the_o twelve_v and_o he_o have_v no_o hand_n in_o it_o six_o the_o origines_fw-la consist_v of_o so_o many_o childish_a ridiculous_a and_o absurd_a relation_n that_o no_o wise_a man_n can_v give_v any_o credit_n to_o so_o trifle_v a_o author_n that_o story_n of_o mark_n be_v go_v to_o a_o shoemaker_n or_o cobbler_n to_o have_v his_o shoe-latchet_a mend_v of_o hananias_n prick_v his_o finger_n with_o the_o awl_n and_o thereupon_o grow_v angry_a of_o mark_n be_v 〈◊〉_d he_o with_o a_o promise_n to_o heal_v his_o finger_n if_o he_o will_v belive_o in_o christ_n of_o hananias_n believe_v and_o be_v cure_v and_o last_o of_o mark_n be_v baptise_v he_o thereupon_o and_o make_v he_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n be_v to_o i_o incredible_a another_o of_o the_o like_a nature_n be_v that_o of_o alexander_n desire_v that_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n shall_v not_o be_v call_v papa_n whereas_o it_o have_v be_v decree_v before_o in_o the_o day_n of_o heracles_n i_o suppose_v for_o distinction_n sake_n bishop_n be_v style_v father_n therefore_o it_o be_v judge_v fit_a that_o the_o patriarch_n shall_v be_v honour_v with_o the_o title_n of_o grandfather_n but-why_a alexander_n shall_v be_v so_o self-denying_a as_o to_o refuse_v a_o honourable_a title_n which_o several_a of_o his_o predecessor_n have_v have_v beforehim_v be_v to_o i_o a_o mystery_n again_o that_o wonderful_a design_n of_o mark_n as_o 〈◊〉_d report_v it_o to_o have_v always_o the_o exact_a number_n of_o twelve_o presbyter_n in_o alexandria_n appear_v to_o i_o not_o very_o solid_a last_o of_o the_o same_o stamp_n be_v that_o request_n of_o peter_n to_o be_v crucify_v with_o his_o head_n downward_o that_o he_o may_v not_o have_v the_o honour_n to_o die_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o jesus_n christ_n do_v i_o fancy_n that_o peter_n never_o request_v such_o a_o thing_n or_o if_o he_o do_v that_o nero_n never_o grant_v it_o seven_o whereas_o eutychius_n will_v make_v we_o believe_v that_o mark_n be_v rule_n about_o the_o presbyter_n of_o alexandria_n not_o the_o neighbour_a bishop_n of_o egypt_n choose_v and_o ordain_v the_o patriarch_n and_o presbyter_n continue_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o alexander_n who_o must_v therefore_o be_v the_o last_o that_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o presbyter_n about_o the_o year_n 310._o yet_o st._n cyprian_n who_o flourish_v above_o 60_o year_n before_o alexander_n have_v something_o that_o make_v i_o suspect_v the_o contrary_a and_o that_o mark_v establish_v no_o such_o order_n at_o alexandria_n st._n cyprians_n word_n be_v these_o propter_fw-la quod_fw-la diligenter_fw-la de_fw-fr traditione_n divina_fw-la &_o ox._n apostolica_fw-la observatione_fw-la servandum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o tenendum_fw-la quod_fw-la apud_fw-la nos_fw-la quoque_fw-la &_o fere_n per_fw-la provincias_fw-la universas_fw-la tenetur_fw-la ut_fw-la ad_fw-la ordinationes_fw-la rite_n celebrandas_fw-la ad_fw-la eam_fw-la plebem_fw-la cui_fw-la praepositus_fw-la ordinatur_fw-la episcopi_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la provinciae_fw-la proximi_fw-la quique_fw-la conveniant_fw-la &_o episcopus_fw-la delegatur_fw-la plebe_fw-la present_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v part_n of_o a_o letter_n write_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o carthage_n to_o the_o church_n of_o leon_n asturica_n and_o emerita_n in_o spain_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o this_o be_v a_o divine_a tradition_n a_o apostolical_a practice_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n shall_v assemble_v choose_v and_o ordain_v a_o new_a bishop_n and_o that_o it_o universal_o obtain_v apud_fw-la nos_fw-la say_v the_o father_n among_o we_o in_o africa_n and_o almost_o in_o all_o the_o province_n in_o the_o world_n in_o the_o roman_a empire_n besure_n and_o i_o take_v cyprian_n to_o be_v a_o much_o trusty_a author_n than_o eutychius_n or_o jerom_n either_o to_o support_v this_o testimony_n of_o st._n cyprian_n i_o produce_v the_o first_o of_o the_o apostolical_a canon_n which_o be_v collect_v before_o st._n cyprian_n at_o least_o a_o good_a while_n before_o the_o nicene_n council_n as_o dr._n beverigde_v have_v show_v 4._o wherein_o as_o be_v by_o selden_n pretend_v the_o custom_n of_o alexandria_n be_v alter_v but_o 〈◊〉_d can_v be_v as_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o the_o first_o canon_n aforesaid_a which_o run_v thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d if_o then_o this_o
that_o be_v make_v bishop_n by_o the_o pope_n among_o the_o scot_n whereas_o in_o former_a time_n bishop_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o culdee_n and_o monk_n the_o people_n choose_v they_o here_o then_o the_o witness_n do_v not_o agree_v among_o themselves_o for_o fordon_n say_v without_o bishop_n and_o major_a presbyter_n only_o but_o boethius_n plain_o intimate_v the_o scot_n have_v bishop_n in_o former_a time_n though_o not_o of_o the_o roman_a stamp_n nor_o thence_o send_v unto_o the_o scot_n palladius_n be_v the_o first_o of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n not_o the_o first_o bishop_n whoever_o chose'em_n be_v nothing_o to_o our_o purpose_n the_o scot_n have_v bishop_n before_o palladius_n according_a to_o boethius_n who_o be_v pick_v out_o of_o the_o monk_n and_o culdee_n but_o he_o say_v not_o ordain_v by_o they_o it_o may_v as_o well_o be_v affirm_v that_o because_o our_o bishop_n at_o this_o day_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o presbyter_n that_o therefore_o they_o be_v ordain_v by_o they_o last_o the_o say_a archbishop_n usher_n there_o produce_v another_o testimony_n out_o of_o john_n baly_n who_o write_v palladius_n be_v send_v among_o the_o scot_n that_o he_o may_v establish_v the_o episcopal_a order_n among_o they_o after_o the_o roman_a fashion_n for_o he_o add_v the_o scot_n have_v before_o that_o time_n their_o bishop_n and_o other_z minister_n as_o it_o be_v among_o the_o britain_n after_o the_o asiatic_a manner_n but_o it_o please_v not_o the_o roman_n the_o pope_n who_o affect_v ceremony_n and_o hate_v the_o asiatic_n but_o though_o the_o scot_n be_v ancient_o the_o inhabitans_fw-la of_o ireland_n yet_o say_v mr._n o._n these_o author_n call_v the_o ancient_a inhabitant_n of_o the_o now_o scotland_n by_o the_o name_n they_o be_v know_v in_o their_o own_o day_n and_o to_o they_o palladius_n be_v think_v to_o have_v be_v send_v true_a but_o it_o be_v their_o ignorance_n or_o worse_a nothing_o be_v more_o clear_a than_o that_o the_o ancient_a inhabitant_n of_o the_o now_o scotland_n be_v britain_n and_o pict_n not_o scot_n this_o be_v full_o make_v out_o in_o the_o historical_a account_n of_o the_o church-government_n etc._n etc._n as_o well_o as_o by_o archbishop_n usher_n authority_n to_o who_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n whereas_o bede_n l._n 5._o c._n 10._o relate_v how_o that_o columba_n be_v the_o first_o teacher_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n among_o the_o tramontane_n pict_n to_o the_o north_n mr._n o._n thus_o gloss_n on_o that_o passage_n he_o be_v the_o first_o 144._o bede_n know_v of_o imply_v there_o be_v other_o before_o that_o bede_n know_v not_o of_o ans._n at_o this_o rate_n all_o authority_n may_v be_v elude_v and_o all_o the_o testimony_n produce_v by_o mr._n o._n in_o favour_n of_o his_o cause_n may_v easy_o be_v lay_v aside_o bede_n 〈◊〉_d no_o other_o yet_o the_o contrary_n be_v true_a thus_o i_o may_v say_v fordon_n and_o major_n talk_v of_o presbyter_n and_o monk_n among_o the_o scot_n without_o bishop_n that_o be_v that_o they_o know_v of_o but_o however_o there_o be_v bishop_n among_o they_o bede_n himself_o give_v not_o the_o 〈◊〉_d occasion_n for_o this_o gloss_n but_o be_v as_o positive_a herein_o as_o any_o writer_n can_v be_v and_o he_o be_v a_o better_a witness_n in_o these_o matter_n than_o fordon_n major_n and_o boethius_n these_o talk_n of_o matter_n before_o their_o time_n a_o 1000_o year_n without_o any_o authority_n to_o back_v their_o relation_n bede_n of_o thing_n which_o happen_v but_o about_o 140_o year_n only_o before_o his_o time_n for_o 〈◊〉_d flourish_v anno_fw-la 560._o and_o bede_n be_v bear_v anno_fw-la 707._o and_o flourish_v 735._o in_o short_a then_o bede_n may_v well_o understand_v what_o happen_v at_o 〈◊〉_d and_o among_o the_o northern_a pict_n the_o english_a saxon_n have_v so_o late_o receive_v christianity_n from_o the_o bishop_n send_v hither_o by_o columba_n and_o his_o successor_n mr._n o._n go_v on_o to_o acquaint_v we_o christianity_n be_v much_o more_o ancient_a in_o the_o north_n of_o the_o now_o scotland_n and_o that_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o bishop_n cowper_n ans._n bishop_n cowper_n labour_v under_o the_o common_a disease_n of_o easy_o believe_v and_o advance_v the_o antiquity_n and_o honour_n as_o he_o think_v of_o his_o own_o nation_n he_o bring_v no_o testimony_n of_o credit_n but_o that_o out_o of_o theodoret_n which_o belong_v unto_o the_o southern_a britain_n for_o of_o tertullian_n we_o have_v before_o treat_v but_o mr._n o._n will_v be_v resolve_v in_o some_o query_n first_o when_o the_o father_n mention_n joseph_n of_o arimathea_n 146._o simon_n zelotes_n etc._n etc._n to_o have_v preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o britain_n what_o reason_n have_v we_o to_o exclude_v north_n britain_n the_o zeal_n of_o those_o apostle_n and_o apostolical_a man_n and_o their_o charity_n will_v prompt_v they_o to_o endeavour_v the_o propagation_n of_o the_o gospel_n throughout_o britain_n and_o part_n of_o the_o now_o scotland_n belong_v then_o to_o the_o british_a king_n ans._n i_o know_v no_o father_n that_o mention_n joseph_n of_o arimathea_n and_o simon_n zelotes_n except_o haply_o dorotheus_n who_o be_v the_o father_n of_o a_o thousand_o lie_n or_o fordon_n major_n boethius_n fleming_n balaeus_n and_o 91._o such_o other_o late_a and_o legendary_a writer_n i_o can_v give_v several_a good_a reason_n against_o the_o north_n britain_n be_v so_o early_o convert_v and_o good_a one_o too_o as_o i_o think_v britain_n ancient_o be_v divide_v into_o very_o many_o petty_a kingdom_n none_o of_o the_o prince_n receive_v the_o faith_n very_o early_o that_o we_o know_v of_o save_o lucius_n perhaps_o the_o roman_n never_o penetrate_v into_o the_o now_o scotland_n till_o a_o good_a while_n after_o and_o it_o be_v by_o their_o mean_n in_o part_n that_o christianity_n spread_v its_o self_n the_o pict_n in_o north_n scotland_n never_o stoop_v to_o their_o yoke_n which_o render_v their_o conversion_n more_o difficult_a and_o something_o i_o hope_v in_o this_o point_n may_v be_v ascribe_v unto_o the_o secret_a will_n and_o providence_n of_o god_n can_n mr._n o._n give_v i_o any_o other_o reason_n than_o such_o as_o these_o that_o the_o saxon_n and_o angli_fw-la in_o germany_n who_o overrun_v britain_n be_v no_o soon_o convert_v though_o tertullian_n reckon_v the_o german_n in_o general_n to_o have_v be_v christian_n in_o his_o time_n nor_o be_v the_o apostle_n themselves_o nor_o the_o apostolical_a man_n always_o successful_a in_o their_o endeavour_n st._n paul_n be_v forbid_v to_o preach_v in_o asia_n act_n 16._o 6._o it_o be_v a_o wretched_a way_n of_o prove_v a_o matter_n of_o fact_n in_o question_n from_o such_o slender_a probability_n by_o the_o like_a argument_n one_o may_v prove_v that_o all_o europe_n asia_n and_o africa_n embrace_v the_o gospel_n a_o thousand_o year_n since_o even_o the_o most_o northern_a scythian_n the_o most_o eastern_a indian_n and_o seres_n and_o the_o african_n about_o the_o cape_n of_o good-hope_a in_o short_a though_o paul_n plant_v and_o apollo_n water_n yet_o it_o be_v god_n who_o give_v the_o increase_n it_o be_v certain_a the_o apostle_n themselves_o do_v not_o always_o take_v fish_n wherever_o they_o cast_v their_o net_n our_o lord_n foretell_v they_o as_o much_o direct_v they_o therefore_o to_o shake_v off_o the_o dust_n of_o their_o foot_n as_o a_o testimony_n against_o they_o that_o reject_v their_o doctrine_n but_o enough_o of_o mr._n oh_o first_fw-mi query_n second_o he_o ask_v if_o the_o north_n britain_n receive_v their_o first_o conversion_n by_o man_n send_v from_o rome_n as_o seem_v from_o bede_n e._n h._n l._n 3._o c._n 4_o how_o come_v they_o to_o keep_v their_o easter_n after_o the_o eastern_a manner_n ans._n this_o be_v account_v for_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o st._n asaph_n and_o mr._n o._n aught_o to_o have_v acquiess_v or_o else_o refute_v 7._o the_o bishop_n and_o not_o thus_o frivolous_o repeat_v the_o bare_a objection_n about_o easter_n without_o vindicate_v it_o against_o the_o bishop_n but_o he_o seem_v to_o read_v book_n on_o purpose_n to_o furnish_v himself_o with_o little_a objection_n not_o with_o a_o disposition_n to_o hearken_v unto_o reason_n but_o to_o spin_v out_o and_o continue_v dispute_n for_o ever_o beside_o the_o north_n britain_n here_o so_o call_v by_o mr._n o._n be_v by_o bede_n in_o his_o history_n describe_v to_o be_v the_o most_o southern_a part_n of_o the_o now_o scotland_n adjoin_v unto_o england_n and_o call_v galloway_n or_o annandale_n on_o this_o side_n edinburgh_n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o northern_a tramontaene_fw-la 〈◊〉_d beyond_o edinburgh_n whither_o we_o say_v the_o roman_n neither_o gentile_n nor_o christian_n nor_o the_o christian_a religion_n ever_o reach_v before_o columba_n settle_v at_o hylas_n who_o also_o come_v thither_o not_o from_o rome_n but_o ireland_n mr._n o._n far_o plead_v these_o word_n of_o bede_n
officii_fw-la it_o have_v then_o be_v more_o congruous_a according_a to_o our_o adversary_n argument_n to_o have_v name_v all_o of_o they_o bishop_n except_o the_o precedent_n who_o shall_v have_v be_v call_v presbyter_n as_o be_v the_o elder_a among_o they_o afterward_o ignatius_n exhort_v the_o magnesian_o not_o to_o despise_v demas_n their_o bishop_n for_o his_o youth_n last_o 〈◊〉_d assure_v we_o that_o the_o presbyter_n of_o alexandria_n by_o mark_n be_v institution_n choose_v their_o patriarch_n so_o that_o merit_n and_o election_n not_o age_n determine_v the_o competition_n by_o the_o way_n they_o also_o according_a to_o this_o author_n eutychius_n ordain_v their_o patriarch_n by_o prayer_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n with_o what_o truth_n then_o can_v hilary_n assert_v episcopi_fw-la &_o presbyteri_fw-la 〈◊〉_d est_fw-la ordinatio_fw-la but_o i_o have_v do_v this_o fictitious_a hilary_n his_o question_n and_o commentary_n too_o great_a a_o honour_n in_o waste_v thus_o much_o paper_n about_o he_o and_o them_o chap._n xii_o of_o st._n jerom_n '_o be_v testimony_n before_o i_o examine_v the_o testimony_n of_o this_o father_n allege_v by_o mr._n o._n in_o favour_n of_o the_o identity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n i_o will_v lay_v down_o my_o own_o hypothesis_n such_o i_o be_o persuade_v as_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o i_o be_o of_o opinion_n also_o will_v go_v a_o great_a way_n to_o reconcile_v jerom_n with_o himself_o as_o for_o my_o own_o opinion_n i_o make_v account_n with_o bp._n pearson_n that_o apost_n the_o christian_a church_n strict_o speak_v begin_v upon_o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n when_o the_o spirit_n descend_v upon_o the_o holy_a apostle_n and_o as_o i_o may_v say_v anoint_v they_o unto_o the_o office_n of_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o establish_v the_o christian_a church_n throughout_o the_o world_n beginning_n at_o jerusalem_n that_o they_o be_v for_o some_o small_a time_n the_o only_a ecclesiastical_a officer_n in_o the_o church_n that_o when_o the_o church_n increase_v and_o believer_n be_v multiply_v and_o by_o consequence_n the_o apostle_n unable_a to_o manage_v the_o whole_a work_n by_o themselves_o they_o take_v in_o seven_o deacon_n to_o their_o assistance_n devolve_v on_o they_o entire_o one_o branch_n of_o their_o power_n viz._n dispense_n the_o public_a alm_n among_o the_o poor_a as_o also_o admit_v they_o to_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o baptise_v when_o occasion_n offer_v or_o necessity_n require_v or_o their_o leisure_n from_o their_o own_o proper_a business_n will_v allow_v that_o not_o very_o long_o after_o the_o church_n still_o increase_n more_o and_o more_o and_o believer_n multiply_v not_o only_a at_o jerusalem_n but_o at_o samaria_n and_o in_o other_o part_n of_o judea_n the_o apostle_n add_v another_o sort_n of_o church_n officer_n that_o be_v presbyter_n acts._n 11._o 30._o ch_n 15._o that_o to_o these_o presbyter_n be_v commit_v by_o the_o apostle_n the_o principal_a care_n and_o trust_v of_o minister_a in_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o in_o their_o absence_n of_o rule_v the_o flock_n in_o matter_n of_o less_o moment_n the_o apostle_n still_o reserve_v to_o themselves_o the_o supreme_a power_n in_o the_o high_a and_o important_a affair_n of_o the_o church_n which_o they_o discharge_v either_o by_o messenger_n or_o by_o letter_n or_o else_o visit_v they_o and_o last_o that_o these_o presbyter_n be_v indifferent_o call_v either_o elder_n or_o bishop_n and_o govern_v the_o aforesaid_a church_n in_o a_o parity_n among_o themselves_o of_o this_o interval_n of_o time_n i_o reckon_v jerom_n may_v speak_v when_o he_o contend_v for_o the_o parity_n and_o identity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n the_o church_n then_o hitherto_o be_v govern_v communi_fw-la presbyterorum_fw-la consilio_fw-la by_o the_o college_n of_o presbyter_n no_o other_o preside_v over_o they_o in_o the_o apostle_n absence_n in_o process_n of_o time_n when_o the_o apostle_n have_v determine_v among_o themselves_o to_o disperse_v in_o order_n to_o the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n unto_o all_o the_o world_n they_o resolve_v that_o one_o be_v choose_v from_o among_o the_o presbyter_n shall_v be_v set_v over_o the_o rest_n unto_o who_o all_o the_o care_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v belong_v the_o seed_n of_o schism_n may_v be_v take_v away_o and_o that_o this_o shall_v be_v establish_v and_o observe_v toto_fw-la orb_n throughout_o the_o world_n the_o period_n of_o time_n when_o this_o course_n be_v take_v by_o the_o apostle_n i_o have_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o preface_n but_o jerom_n in_o this_o circumstance_n seem_v not_o at_o one_o with_o himself_o for_o whereas_o in_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n he_o suppose_v the_o apostle_n to_o have_v take_v up_o this_o resolution_n after_o the_o corinthian_a schism_n yet_o make_v james_n bishop_n of_o ec._n jerusalem_n he_o must_v of_o necessity_n suppose_v it_o do_v before_o or_o at_o the_o council_n of_o jerusalem_n at_o which_o time_n there_o be_v not_o any_o church_n or_o so_o much_o as_o one_o christian_a at_o corinth_n by_o what_o name_n or_o title_n the_o person_n thus_o choose_v out_o of_o the_o presbyter_n and_o entrust_v with_o the_o supreme_a government_n of_o church_n be_v call_v be_v of_o little_a moment_n to_o be_v inquire_v into_o nevertheless_o if_o theodoret_n be_v to_o be_v credit_v as_o i_o know_v no_o reason_n to_o the_o contrary_a they_o also_o be_v at_o first_o style_v apostle_n and_o it_o be_v with_o reason_n think_v that_o epaphroditus_n be_v therefore_o reckon_v or_o rather_o declare_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o philippian_n 25._o blondel_n himself_o acknowledge_v there_o be_v a_o secondary_a sort_n of_o apostle_n among_o the_o church_n person_n of_o the_o high_a rank_n and_o most_o eminent_a gift_n i_o take_v these_o thing_n in_o some_o measure_n prove_v sufficient_o before_o and_o in_o what_o follow_v and_o most_o reasonable_a in_o themselves_o to_o be_v suppose_v nevertherless_a if_o the_o adversary_n shall_v reject_v they_o as_o it_o be_v most_o likely_a they_o will_v i_o shall_v only_o say_v that_o i_o be_o not_o much_o concern_v about_o they_o that_o be_v whether_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o make_v jerom_n write_v consistent_o with_o himself_o if_o not_o his_o testimony_n in_o the_o controversy_n before_o we_o be_v not_o worth_a a_o rush_n he_o have_v contradict_v himself_o and_o overthrow_v in_o one_o place_n what_o he_o be_v make_v to_o have_v affirm_v in_o another_o the_o question_n then_o upon_o jerom_n authority_n be_v not_o about_o the_o precise_a time_n when_o this_o remedy_n against_o schism_n be_v apply_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v to_o say_v whether_o before_o or_o immediate_o after_o the_o corinthian_a division_n let_v jerom_n look_v to_o that_o but_o more_o general_o whether_o he_o believe_v or_o ever_o assert_v or_o can_v consistent_o with_o himself_o assert_v that_o this_o provision_n against_o schism_n be_v devise_v and_o make_v not_o till_o after_o the_o apostle_n decease_n the_o presbyterian_o be_v oblige_v to_o hold_v the_o affirmative_a or_o else_o give_v up_o the_o cause_n my_o business_n then_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o jerom_n do_v not_o believe_v nor_o ever_o assert_v nor_o can_v intend_v to_o assert_v that_o the_o decree_n about_o choose_v one_o from_o among_o the_o presbyter_n and_o set_v he_o above_o the_o rest_n to_o preside_v and_o govern_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n be_v make_v after_o the_o apostle_n day_n by_o some_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n but_o that_o it_o be_v the_o ordination_n and_o appointment_n of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o this_o i_o pretend_v to_o make_v appear_v by_o the_o follow_a observation_n out_o of_o jerom._n 1._o these_o word_n of_o jerom_n toto_fw-la orb_n decretum_fw-la est_fw-la must_v denote_v it_o to_o have_v be_v a_o apostolic_a constitution_n for_o a_o ecclesiastical_a decree_n oblige_v all_o christendom_n to_o its_o observation_n can_v never_o have_v be_v make_v for_o above_o 200_o year_n after_o the_o apostle_n decease_n and_o nothing_o less_o than_o a_o ecumenical_a synod_n have_v competent_a power_n to_o prescribe_v this_o remedy_n against_o schism_n but_o there_o never_o be_v any_o such_o universal_a council_n before_o that_o of_o nice_n too_o late_o to_o father_n the_o decree_n in_o the_o judgement_n even_o of_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o moreover_o this_o apostle_n canon_n as_o they_o be_v common_o call_v which_o be_v a_o collection_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a decree_n of_o the_o church_n take_v it_o for_o grant_v other_o that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v lodge_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o bishop_n and_o only_o regulate_v some_o circumstance_n about_o their_o ordination_n and_o the_o method_n of_o their_o government_n if_o bishop_n have_v be_v mere_o by_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n we_o shall_v certain_o have_v find_v they_o establish_v in_o these_o apostolical_a canon_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v imagine_v the_o
bishop_n then_o the_o bishop_n ordain_v the_o young_a son_n to_o be_v the_o elder_a and_o last_o another_o young_a son_n be_v choose_v by_o prelatis_n &_o subditis_fw-la the_o minister_n and_o people_n and_o ordain_v but_o by_o another_o part_n of_o these_o cathari_n near_o the_o sea_n thus_o the_o bishop_n before_o his_o death_n ordain_v the_o elder_a son_n bishop_n to_o succeed_v he_o and_o then_o as_o before_o all_o the_o aforesaid_a ordination_n be_v make_v with_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o the_o honour_n of_o ordain_v and_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v attribute_v unto_o the_o bishop_n or_o unto_o he_o that_o be_v the_o elder_a son_n who_o hold_v he_o book_n of_o the_o new-testament_n 758._o upon_o the_o head_n of_o he_o on_o who_o the_o hand_n be_v lay_v thus_o much_o their_o adversary_n say_v of_o they_o wherein_z doubtless_o there_o be_v a_o mixture_n of_o truth_n and_o i_o alshood_n at_o least_o this_o miserable_a people_n scatter_v up_o and_o down_o do_v somewhat_o vary_v in_o their_o rite_n and_o be_v never_o at_o all_o time_n and_o in_o all_o place_n steady_a to_o themselves_o i_o have_v mention_v before_o how_o that_o about_o the_o year_n 1470._o the_o waldenses_n in_o austria_n and_o moravia_n have_v bishop_n and_o from_o these_o it_o be_v that_o the_o fratres_n 〈◊〉_d draw_v the_o succession_n of_o their_o 〈◊〉_d order_n which_o history_n will_v deserve_v here_o to_o be_v more_o particular_o transcribe_v in_o order_n whereunto_o i_o must_v now_o tell_v the_o story_n of_o the_o fratres_n bohemi_n as_o comenius_n and_o the_o history_n of_o the_o persecut_n bohem_n have_v make_v it_o ready_a to_o my_o hand_n fetch_v it_o from_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o christianity_n the_o sclavonian_a nation_n be_v convert_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n rom._n 15._o 19_o 2_o ep._n to_o tim._n 4._o 10._o by_o sclavonian_n comenius_n mean_v all_o the_o nation_n from_o macedonia_n northward_o even_o to_o 4._o russia_n polonia_n and_o germany_n some_o proof_n of_o their_o early_a embrace_v the_o gospel_n he_o fetch_v from_o st._n jerom_n who_o be_v bear_v 5._o at_o strydon_n a_o city_n of_o 〈◊〉_d or_o dalmatia_n in_o the_o six_o synod_n of_o constantinople_n in_o the_o year_n 680._o the_o lombard_n and_o sclavonian_n be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v christian_n about_o the_o year_n 861._o cyrillus_n and_o methodius_n two_o grecian_a bishop_n make_v the_o ibid._n people_n inhabit_v about_o the_o danube_n christian_n and_o then_o pass_v into_o moravia_n and_o bohemia_n propagate_v the_o faith_n among_o they_o 7._o after_o this_o comenius_n mention_n ditmarus_n saxo_n bishop_n of_o prague_n *_o the_o history_n of_o the_o bohemian_a persecution_n tell_v of_o waytichius_fw-la ii_o bishop_n of_o prague_n in_o the_o year_n 907._o of_o boleslaus_n pius_n another_o bishop_n of_o prague_n anno_fw-la 965._o of_o priest_n 9_o and_o prelate_n anno_fw-la 1197._o who_o oppose_v the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o 36._o pope_n and_o of_o conrade_n bishop_n of_o prague_n who_o leave_v the_o romish_a error_n remain_v bishop_n there_o anno_fw-la 1421._o about_o 20_o year_n before_o this_o happen_v viz._n anno_fw-la 1400._o the_o bohemian_a church_n separate_v from_o the_o roman_a upon_o the_o account_n that_o the_o public_a prayer_n be_v make_v in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n that_o the_o clergy_n be_v oblige_v to_o celibacy_n that_o transubstatiation_n be_v make_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o the_o people_n be_v deprive_v of_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o lord's-supper_n this_o occasion_v the_o dispersion_n of_o the_o bohemian_n and_o their_o settlement_n in_o austria_n from_o whence_o they_o send_v unto_o the_o greek_a church_n for_o the_o ordination_n of_o their_o minister_n and_o have_v hope_n give_v they_o of_o their_o obtain_n it_o they_o remove_v after_o into_o silesia_n 20._o now_o it_o be_v that_o gregory_n a_o holy_a man_n be_v by_o the_o persecutor_n torture_v but_o fall_v into_o a_o trance_n feel_v no_o pain_n and_o be_v believe_v dead_a recover_v he_o tell_v his_o friend_n of_o a_o vision_n wherein_z among_o other_o thing_n he_o see_v three_o man_n stand_v about_o a_o tree_n lade_v with_o fruit_n and_o defend_v it_o from_o the_o bird_n 21._o and_o about_o the_o same_o time_n the_o fratres_n bohemi_n be_v under_o some_o trouble_n of_o mind_n how_o they_o shall_v for_o the_o future_a be_v provide_v with_o a_o succession_n of_o right_o ordain_v minister_n for_o they_o consider_v that_o though_o several_a of_o the_o roman_a priest_n come_v over_o to_o they_o it_o be_v too_o uncertain_a to_o hope_v for_o they_o 〈◊〉_d rome_n they_o doubt_v also_o whether_o the_o ordination_n be_v valid_a when_o a_o presbyter_n and_o not_o a_o bishop_n ordain_v a_o presbyter_n and_o that_o if_o the_o question_n be_v once_o move_v about_o it_o whether_o they_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o defend_v such_o a_o ordination_n either_o at_o home_o or_o abroad_o at_o length_n after_o some_o year_n deliberation_n viz_o 1467._o and_o about_o 6_o year_n after_o the_o say_a vision_n of_o gregory_n have_v fast_v and_o pray_v for_o direction_n from_o god_n they_o resolve_v upon_o the_o follow_a course_n they_o choose_v nine_o of_o the_o most_o deserve_a brethren_n and_o fit_a for_o the_o ministry_n they_o wrap_v up_o twelve_o ticket_n nine_o whereof_o be_v blank_n and_o three_o full_a one_o have_v write_v on_o they_o est_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o they_o mean_v it_o shall_v signify_v it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n but_o the_o blank_n be_v to_o denote_v it_o be_v not_o the_o will_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v have_v bishop_n these_o twelve_o ticket_n be_v mix_v be_v deliver_v to_o a_o young_a boy_n not_o know_v what_o he_o do_v to_o be_v distribute_v one_o to_o every_o one_o of_o those_o nine_o person_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o nine_o blank_a ticket_n may_v every_o one_o have_v be_v give_v out_o unto_o those_o nine_o person_n from_o whence_o it_o will_v have_v be_v conclude_v that_o what_o they_o be_v about_o to_o do_v be_v not_o the_o will_n of_o god_n but_o it_o so_o happen_v that_o the_o three_o full_a ticket_n be_v deliver_v to_o three_o of_o the_o nine_o sc_n to_o kunwaldius_fw-la praelausius_fw-la and_o crenovius_fw-la and_o hence_o they_o gather_v assure_o that_o what_o they_o be_v design_v be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n sc_n to_o seek_v for_o episcopal_a order_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o continue_v a_o right_a succession_n of_o they_o and_o that_o to_o that_o end_n those_o three_o person_n be_v to_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n according_o they_o send_v three_o person_n unto_o the_o church_n of_o the_o waldenses_n who_o be_v at_o that_o time_n plant_v in_o the_o confine_n of_o moravia_n and_o austria_n acquaint_v they_o with_o what_o be_v do_v and_o ask_v their_o advice_n one_o of_o these_o three_o be_v michael_n zambergius_n so_o call_v because_o he_o be_v pastor_n zambergensis_fw-la 20._o his_o true_a name_n be_v michael_n bradacius_fw-la how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o be_v send_v in_o the_o room_n of_o one_o of_o the_o other_o three_o choose_v by_o lot_n be_v not_o say_v time_n but_o zambergius_n and_o the_o other_o two_o come_v to_o the_o wâldenses_n find_v one_o stephen_n their_o bishop_n who_o call_v to_o he_o another_o waldensian_a bishop_n and_o some_o minister_n they_o create_v these_o three_o bishop_n with_o imposition_n of_o hand_n thereby_o confer_v on_o they_o the_o power_n of_o ordain_v minister_n 60._o 〈◊〉_d three_o new_a ordain_v bishop_n of_o the_o fratres_n bohemi_n be_v the_o three_o which_o 〈◊〉_d see_v in_o his_o 〈◊〉_d guardian_n of_o the_o tree_n that_o be_v of_o the_o bohemian_a church_n note_v that_o the_o waldenses_n affirm_v themselves_o to_o have_v have_v a_o lawful_a and_o uninterrupted_a succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o the_o apostle_n day_n supra_fw-la and_o derive_v their_o original_a from_o the_o time_n of_o 〈◊〉_d this_o happen_v i_o reckon_v about_o 1420._o or_o 1430._o about_o the_o year_n 1500._o my_o author_n witness_v that_o there_o be_v 200_o church_n in_o bohemia_n and_o moravia_n in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o bohemian_a persecution_n after_o their_o have_v receive_v bishop_n from_o the_o waldenses_n i_o read_v of_o lucas_n pragene_n bishop_n of_o the_o bohemian_n 79._o of_o sanctuariensis_fw-la a_o italian_a bishop_n who_o for_o conscience_n sake_n embrace_v the_o bohemian_a communion_n anno_fw-la 1482._o 81._o and_o of_o philip_n bishop_n of_o sidon_n be_v among_o they_o anno_fw-la 1493._o afterward_o in_o the_o year_n 1499._o the_o bohemian_n send_v as_o far_o as_o armenia_n for_o ordination_n 82._o their_o succession_n perhaps_o by_o some_o accident_n fail_v anno_fw-la 1542._o i_o find_v joane_v augusta_n be_v their_o antistes_fw-la 36._o or_o bishop_n the_o next_o year_n after_o i_o meet_v with_o a_o great_a number_n of_o the_o bohemian_n retire_v into_o prussia_n who_o their_o bishop_n mathias_n sionius_fw-la 38._o follow_v soon_o after_o
about_o 1556._o a_o synod_n be_v hold_v in_o the_o middle_n of_o moravia_n where_o be_v present_a more_o than_o 200_o of_o the_o clergy_n then_o 40._o be_v fifteen_o minister_n ordain_v two_o bishop_n and_o six_o consenior_o the_o two_o bishop_n be_v george_n israel_n for_o the_o polonian_a church_n and_o johannes_n blaboslaus_fw-la for_o the_o moravian_n at_o the_o same_o time_n joannes_n nigranus_fw-la be_v bishop_n in_o bohemia_n supra_fw-la now_o it_o be_v that_o the_o arrian_n afterward_o call_v socinian_n disturb_v the_o peace_n order_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d bohemi_fw-fr assert_v that_o the_o pastor_n alias_o the_o minister_n or_o presbyter_n have_v power_n to_o do_v all_o thing_n in_o the_o church_n and_o this_o paradox_n they_o pretend_v to_o advance_v leave_v any_o thing_n that_o smell_v of_o popery_n shall_v remain_v among_o they_o who_o have_v renounce_v that_o communion_n 44._o therefore_o they_o be_v so_o true_a to_o their_o principle_n as_o not_o only_o to_o disallow_v of_o bishop_n call_v senior_n or_o superintendant_o but_o to_o deny_v even_o the_o godhead_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 〈◊〉_d forsooth_o the_o papist_n maintain_v that_o doctrine_n but_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n they_o may_v as_o well_o have_v deny_v the_o be_v of_o god_n himself_o at_o the_o same_o time_n in_o 〈◊〉_d polonia_n the_o fratres_n bohemi_n have_v five_o bishop_n for_o so_o many_o diocese_n vix_fw-la the_o crasovian_a the_o 〈◊〉_d the_o 〈◊〉_d the_o russian_a and_o the_o belsensis_fw-la diocese_n 46._o anno_fw-la 1571._o joannes_n calephus_fw-la be_v their_o bishop_n in_o bohemia_n joannes_n laurentius_n in_o poland_n stanislaus_n and_o andreas_n stephanus_n 51._o bishop_n of_o the_o fratres_n in_o bohemia_n and_o last_o johannes_n adam_n comenius_n a_o moravian_n and_o another_o a_o polonian_a their_o elect_a bishop_n annno_n 1632._o 9_o comenius_n after_o this_o history_n of_o which_o i_o have_v give_v a_o summary_n account_v so_o far_o as_o belong_v to_o the_o present_a argument_n have_v furnish_v we_o with_o another_o tractate_n which_o he_o style_v ratio_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o unitate_fw-la fratrum_fw-la bohemorum_fw-la the_o pontifical_a of_o the_o bohemian_a brethren_n as_o i_o may_v call_v it_o the_o substance_n whereof_o be_v as_o follow_v he_o tell_v we_o that_o in_o their_o church_n whereof_o himself_o be_v a_o bishop_n elect_a there_o be_v four_o order_n of_o minister_n sc_n the_o 〈◊〉_d sen_fw-la antistites_fw-la or_o the_o prepositi_fw-la ministrorum_fw-la sometime_o call_v vigiles_fw-la or_o speculatores_fw-la superintendentes_fw-la or_o superattendente_n that_o be_v as_o he_o explain_v himself_o in_o our_o language_n bishop_n 2_o conseniores_fw-la which_o he_o expound_v coepiscopi_fw-la or_o chorepiscopi_fw-la or_o the_o bishop_n fellow_n 3._o pastor_n who_o be_v also_o ordinary_o call_v minister_n the_o same_o as_o with_o we_o be_v style_v presbyter_n priest_n or_o elder_n 4._o deacon_n call_v 〈◊〉_d administratores_fw-la or_o adjutores_fw-la among_o the_o bishop_n there_o be_v beside_o a_o praeses_fw-la or_o primate_n or_o the_o first_o bishop_n the_o president_n be_v or_o primate_n office_n among_o other_o thing_n be_v to_o appoint_v and_o call_v synod_n the_o office_n of_o the_o bishop_n beside_o other_o thing_n be_v to_o ordain_v all_o ecclesiastical_a degree_n as_o deacon_n pastor_n consenior_o and_o senior_n or_o bishop_n all_o other_o degree_n be_v obedient_a and_o subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n the_o consenior_o be_v coadjutor_n to_o the_o senior_n or_o bishop_n have_v power_n with_o the_o senior_n or_o without_o they_o but_o by_o their_o direction_n and_o command_n to_o be_v member_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a senate_n and_o be_v above_o the_o pastor_n or_o deacon_n their_o business_n be_v to_o provide_v for_o good_a order_n to_o acquaint_v the_o senior_n with_o misdemeanour_n to_o admonish_v the_o minister_n to_o observe_v the_o ecclesiastical_a statute_n and_o custom_n to_o provide_v fit_a person_n for_o the_o ministry_n to_o exercise_v discipline_n over_o the_o minister_n together_o with_o the_o bishop_n or_o without_o they_o yet_o by_o their_o direction_n to_o examine_v the_o candidate_n 〈◊〉_d for_o holy_a order_n and_o to_o present_v they_o to_o the_o bishop_n diligent_o to_o observe_v how_o the_o pastor_n discharge_v themselves_o in_o their_o office_n to_o reprove_v their_o small_a offence_n and_o to_o acquaint_v the_o bishop_n with_o their_o more_o scandalous_a one_o i_o do_v not_o find_v they_o have_v power_n to_o ordain_v and_o 〈◊〉_d in_o his_o annotation_n say_v that_o in_o minoribus_fw-la negotiis_fw-la episcopi_fw-la vice_n obirent_fw-la as_o the_o ancient_a chorepiscopi_fw-la do_v if_o they_o be_v choose_v senior_n they_o be_v new_o ordain_v with_o imposition_n of_o hand_n as_o pastor_n or_o minister_n be_v the_o senior_n ordain_v all_o order_n the_o senior_n be_v choose_v by_o the_o senior_n consenior_o and_o pastor_n and_o be_v ordain_v in_o a_o general_n assembly_n with_o imposition_n of_o hand_n at_o the_o solemnity_n be_v sing_v that_o hymn_n come_v holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n the_o former_a or_o the_o ordain_v senior_n offer_v the_o new_a create_a bishop_n their_o right_a hand_n in_o token_n of_o fellowship_n the_o consenior_o they_o in_o token_n of_o obedience_n the_o consenior_o be_v ordain_v with_o imposition_n of_o hand_n give_v their_o right_a hand_n to_o the_o senior_n in_o token_n of_o obedience_n to_o the_o former_a consenior_o in_o token_n of_o fellowship_n the_o minister_n offer_v they_o to_o the_o new_a create_v consenior_o in_o token_n of_o obedience_n minister_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o senior_n with_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n of_o the_o senior_n so_o many_o as_o be_v present_a at_o the_o solemnity_n they_o sing_v that_o hymn_n come_v holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n the_o new_a ordain_v minister_n give_v their_o right_a hand_n unto_o the_o senior_n and_o consenior_o in_o token_n of_o obedience_n to_o the_o pastor_n in_o token_n of_o fellowship_n and_o the_o deacon_n offer_v their_o hand_n to_o they_o in_o token_n of_o observance_n to_o conclude_v it_o most_o be_v confess_v that_o comenius_n say_v bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v one_o i_o suppose_v he_o mean_v have_v the_o same_o power_n and_o authority_n to_o minister_v in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d and_o this_o be_v out_o of_o all_o doubt_n but_o withal_o he_o intimate_v that_o a_o bishop_n be_v one_o who_o be_v moreover_o a_o inspector_n or_o superintendent_n and_o for_o this_o cite_v act_n 20._o 28._o his_o mind_n be_v i_o suppose_v that_o st._n paul_n in_o the_o 17_o verse_n address_v himself_o general_o to_o all_o presbyter_n whether_o mere_a elder_n or_o those_o who_o moreover_o have_v the_o oversight_n of_o the_o rest_n but_o in_o the_o 28_o 〈◊〉_d he_o turn_v his_o speech_n unto_o those_o especial_o who_o have_v be_v make_v bishop_n and_o this_o be_v but_o what_o the_o syriac_a version_n seem_v to_o imply_v wherein_o as_o have_v already_o be_v note_v verse_n the_o 17_o elder_n be_v render_v by_o kashishaa_n which_o proper_o and_o only_o signify_v elder_n but_o verse_n the_o 28_o episkupea_n be_v use_v which_o denote_v overseer_n however_o this_o be_v if_o any_o one_o careful_o observe_v what_o have_v be_v before_o relate_v concern_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o bohemian_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o conceive_v but_o that_o bishop_n or_o senior_n be_v somewhat_o more_o than_o mere_a presbyter_n the_o division_n of_o ecclesiastical_a officer_n into_o three_o or_o four_o order_n the_o power_n of_o ordain_v appropriate_v to_o bishop_n the_o great_a care_n they_o have_v about_o get_v a_o right_a succession_n of_o order_n 〈◊〉_d bishop_n and_o many_o other_o remarkable_a passage_n before_o mention_v render_v this_o point_n contestable_a from_o the_o whole_a i_o think_v it_o follow_v that_o the_o waldenses_n and_o the_o fratres_n bohemi_n be_v govern_v by_o bishop_n superior_a to_o minister_n or_o pastor_n long_o after_o they_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o roman_a idolatrous_a communion_n yea_o that_o the_o waldenses_n have_v bishop_n within_o 150_o year_n and_o less_o the_o fratres_n bohemi_n within_o 160._o that_o therefore_o mr._n o._n be_v utter_o mistake_v who_o aver_v that_o the_o waldenses_n have_v no_o other_o minister_n than_o presbyter_n for_o near_a 500_o year_n last_o pass_v and_o that_o presbyter_n ordain_v presbyter_n without_o bishop_n the_o contrary_n be_v most_o certain_a if_o my_o author_n have_v not_o deceive_v i_o mr._n o._n be_v not_o insensible_a of_o this_o matter_n of_o fact_n of_o the_o bohemian_n derive_v their_o bishop_n from_o the_o waldenses_n but_o he_o shuffle_n we_o off_o with_o say_v that_o the_o waldensian_a bishop_n be_v only_o titular_a bishop_n 157._o that_o be_v indeed_o mere_a presbyter_n honour_v with_o the_o bare_a title_n of_o bishop_n if_o mr._n o._n have_v not_o know_v that_o remarkable_a story_n about_o zambergius_n and_o two_o other_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n by_o stephen_n and_o another_o waldensian_a bishop_n he_o may_v possible_o have_v be_v pardonable_a
deceive_v we_o we_o have_v take_v a_o long_a and_o chargeable_a journey_n to_o the_o waldenses_n but_o have_v bring_v no_o thing_n back_o worthy_a our_o pain_n but_o a_o word_n and_o empty_a title_n thus_o the_o whole_a action_n be_v mere_a pageantry_n a_o scene_n of_o imposture_n and_o a_o intrigue_n carry_v on_o by_o hypocrite_n on_o both_o side_n this_o must_v be_v confess_v if_o the_o waldensian_a bishop_n be_v mere_o titular_a as_o mr._n o._n be_v please_v to_o say_v on_o the_o other_o hand_n the_o history_n assure_v we_o that_o the_o fratres_fw-la bohemi_n be_v exceed_o comfort_v and_o encourage_v at_o the_o return_n of_o their_o presbyter_n now_o create_v bishop_n and_o derive_v their_o order_n in_o a_o uninterrupted_a succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n as_o they_o believe_v but_o at_o length_n my_o adversary_n seem_v to_o melt_v a_o little_a and_o to_o come_v half_a way_n over_o to_o we_o he_o profess_v thus_o in_o his_o own_o and_o brethren_n name_n we_o dislke_v not_o that_o for_o order_n sake_n the_o exercise_n of_o this_o power_n shall_v be_v ordinary_o restrain_v to_o the_o grave_a minister_n provide_v they_o assume_v it_o not_o as_o proper_a to_o they_o by_o divine_a right_n nor_o clog_v it_o with_o unscriptural_a imposition_n from_o this_o conclusion_n of_o mr._n o._n it_o follow_v 1._o that_o in_o mr._n oh_o judgement_n the_o church_n may_v restrain_v the_o power_n of_o ordain_v take_v the_o exercise_n of_o it_o from_o some_o of_o the_o yonnger_n fry_n and_o lodging_n it_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o grave_a sort_n but_o the_o mischief_n be_v the_o young_a sort_n will_v present_o cry_v our_o against_o the_o usurpation_n they_o will_v plead_v that_o they_o be_v presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o other_o and_o have_v a_o inherent_a power_n to_o ordain_v that_o it_o can_v be_v take_v from_o they_o by_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n that_o they_o can_v in_o conscience_n part_n with_o that_o power_n and_o right_n which_o the_o scripture_n give_v they_o and_o in_o short_a will_v turn_v all_o mr._n oh_o batter_a ram_n against_o the_o grave_a minister_n which_o he_o have_v plant_v against_o our_o bishop_n and_o with_o more_o reason_n too_o for_o st._n paul_n when_o he_o restrain_v the_o power_n of_o ordination_n he_o have_v not_o respect_n to_o age_n but_o to_o ability_n 〈◊〉_d by_o be_v but_o a_o young_a man_n when_o paul_n set_v he_o over_o the_o church_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o i_o have_v reason_n to_o think_v 〈◊〉_d be_v so_o too_o for_o he_o admonish_v he_o to_o take_v care_n that_o 〈◊〉_d man_n despise_v he_o c._n 2._o 15._o where_o i_o suppose_v it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o titus_n also_o be_v but_o young_a and_o demas_n bishop_n of_o magnesia_n in_o ignatius_n be_v a_o young_a man_n also_o 2._o if_o mr._n o._n will_v be_v please_v to_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o suppose_v st._n paul_n as_o wise_a as_o himself_o it_o be_v all_o i_o ask_v i_o will_v suppose_v then_o that_o the_o say_a apostle_n for_o order_n sake_n do_v restrain_v the_o exercise_n of_o the_o ordain_v power_n to_o some_o person_n by_o he_o make_v choice_n of_o and_o for_o the_o prevention_n of_o schism_n do_v prescribe_v the_o same_o rule_n unto_o the_o church_n which_o mr._n o._n see_v some_o reason_n for_o now_o doubtless_o then_o st._n paul_n leave_v not_o the_o power_n of_o ordain_v promiscuous_o unto_o all_o presbyter_n but_o limit_v it_o unto_o a_o few_o i_o will_v not_o say_v the_o grave_a or_o old_a sort_n but_o the_o wise_a and_o most_o holy_a if_o mr._n o._n will_v nourish_v this_o principle_n and_o make_v such_o deduction_n from_o it_o as_o it_o be_v capable_a of_o he_o will_v soon_o see_v that_o episcopal_a ordination_n be_v apostolical_a but_o i_o believe_v his_o own_o party_n will_v con_v he_o no_o thanks_o for_o this_o liberal_a concession_n mr._n o._n add_v and_o not_o clog_v it_o with_o unscriptural_a imposition_n if_o there_o be_v any_o order_n in_o a_o church_n some_o few_o thing_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v impose_v but_o this_o be_v what_o the_o dissenter_n aim_v at_o that_o every_o one_o may_v be_v leave_v at_o liberty_n to_o say_v and_o do_v what_o be_v right_a in_o his_o own_o eye_n the_o imposition_n lay_v upon_o the_o ordain_v among_o we_o be_v not_o such_o as_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o alone_o devise_v but_o the_o whole_a church_n consent_v unto_o and_o though_o they_o be_v not_o prescribe_v in_o scripture_n they_o be_v not_o antiscriptural_a nor_o introduce_v into_o the_o place_n of_o any_o thing_n require_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o short_a do_v not_o the_o presbyterian_o when_o they_o be_v in_o the_o saddle_n clog_v their_o ordination_n with_o unscriptural_a imposition_n i_o mean_v that_o of_o take_v the_o covenant_n but_o this_o be_v to_o carry_v the_o controversy_n into_o another_o quarter_n i_o shall_v therefore_o let_v it_o pass_v of_o the_o lollard_n 〈◊〉_d have_v it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d fasten_v that_o practice_n on_o the_o lollard_n that_o their_o presbyter_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o bishop_n do_v create_v new_a presbyter_n and_o that_o every_o priest_n or_o presbyter_n have_v as_o good_a a_o power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v and_o to_o minister_v in_o all_o other_o thing_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n as_o the_o pope_n himself_o give_v or_o can_v give_v but_o to_o this_o it_o may_v be_v reply_v that_o it_o be_v only_o the_o report_n of_o a_o adversary_n and_o perhaps_o may_v be_v a_o scandal_n it_o may_v again_o be_v answer_v that_o these_o lollard_n come_v too_o late_o to_o prescribe_v unto_o the_o church_n in_o any_o thing_n by_o they_o practise_v it_o may_v yet_o further_o be_v say_v that_o when_o people_n grope_v their_o way_n in_o a_o dark_a night_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o they_o now_o and_o then_o stumble_v they_o be_v to_o be_v both_o pity_v and_o pardon_v for_o last_o it_o be_v manifest_a if_o the_o testimony_n of_o their_o adversary_n concern_v they_o be_v admit_v that_o the_o lollard_n look_v upon_o even_a presbyter_n as_o a_o order_n no_o way_n approve_v of_o by_o god_n it_o be_v one_o of_o their_o maxim_n presbyteratus_n non_fw-la est_fw-la 〈◊〉_d approbatus_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la so_o that_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n be_v by_o the_o same_o authority_n utter_o 〈◊〉_d the_o church_n it_o be_v another_o of_o their_o opinion_n 〈◊〉_d to_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 566._o that_o no_o day_n be_v holy_a not_o the_o lord's-day_n or_o sabbath_n day_n as_o people_n will_v call_v it_o but_o that_o on_o every_o day_n man_n may_v work_v eat_v and_o drink_v etc._n etc._n if_o then_o the_o lollard_n err_v thus_o gross_o in_o these_o point_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o they_o be_v mistake_v in_o that_o of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n by_o bishop_n but_o if_o their_o authority_n be_v 〈◊〉_d to_o establish_v presbyter_n in_o the_o power_n of_o ordain_v by_o the_o same_o authority_n it_o may_v be_v prove_v the_o lordsday_n be_v not_o holy_a yea_o rather_o 〈◊〉_d the_o order_n of_o presbyter_n be_v not_o approve_v of_o by_o god_n it_o be_v in_o vain_a for_o mr_n o._n to_o equal_v they_o unto_o bishop_n because_o the_o lollard_n bring_v they_o down_o as_o low_a as_o the_o people_n and_o utter_o cancel_v their_o office_n at_o least_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n in_o short_a i_o think_v they_o be_v a_o well_o meaning_n but_o ignorant_a people_n who_o have_v 〈◊〉_d and_o knowledge_n enough_o to_o discover_v the_o gross_a superstition_n idolatry_n and_o corruption_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n but_o not_o to_o define_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n about_o government_n and_o discipline_n final_o note_v here_o that_o this_o instance_n of_o the_o lollard_n who_o appear_v at_o soon_a about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 14_o century_n be_v by_o mr_n o._n bring_v in_o proof_n of_o this_o proposition_n that_o ordination_n by_o 126._o presbyter_n be_v valid_a in_o the_o primitive_a church_n now_o i_o do_v believe_v that_o there_o be_v one_o other_o author_n extant_a that_o pretend_v such_o familiar_a acquaintance_n with_o the_o father_n and_o council_n as_o mr._n o._n do_v especial_o not_o among_o the_o protestant_n that_o ever_o reckon_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o 14_o century_n for_o primitive_a the_o four_o or_o 5_o age_n be_v the_o late_a we_o be_v wont_n to_o appeal_v to_o at_o least_o under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o what_o all_o be_v father_n with_o mr._n o._n that_o favour_n his_o opinion_n and_o the_o primitive_a church_n will_v never_o have_v a_o end_n so_o long_o as_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v find_v conformable_a to_o the_o presbyterian_a discipline_n concern_v the_o boiarians_n or_o bavarian_n who_o as_o mr._n o._n will_v have_v we_o believe_v be_v once_o presbyterian_o i_o will_v only_o say_v thus_o much_o in_o short_a i_o find_v
in_o the_o new_a 〈◊〉_d there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o other_o degree_n and_o distinction_n of_o person_n in_o order_n that_o be_v of_o person_n ordain_v by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n except_o deacon_n and_o presbyter_n for_o bishop_n be_v not_o consecrate_v again_o by_o any_o express_a appointment_n in_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o prevail_a opinion_n of_o those_o time_n it_o be_v last_o to_o be_v observe_v that_o in_o the_o necessary_a doctrine_n etc._n etc._n that_o we_o read_v that_o patriarch_n primate_fw-la archbishop_n and_o metropolitan_o have_v not_o now_o nor_o ever_o have_v power_n authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o other_o bishop_n give_v they_o by_o god_n in_o scripture_n it_o be_v in_o the_o latin_a translation_n add_v cetrosque_fw-la inferiores_fw-la episcopos_fw-la aut_fw-la presbyteros_fw-la which_o make_v no_o alteration_n for_o who_o be_v there_o that_o believe_v not_o that_o the_o archbishop_n of_o york_n have_v no_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o bishop_n of_o chester_n nor_o over_o the_o presbyter_n of_o this_o diocese_n but_o what_o be_v give_v he_o by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a law_n of_o the_o land_n for_o peace_n and_o order_n sake_n but_o it_o be_v worthy_a our_o notice_n that_o in_o the_o k_n book_n as_o be_v before_o at_o large_a set_v down_o order_v or_o ordination_n be_v teach_v to_o be_v a_o divine_a gift_n or_o grace_n give_v by_o the_o imposition_n of_o the_o bishop_n hand_n that_o the_o apostle_n give_v this_o grace_n and_o appoint_v the_o bishop_n after_o they_o to_o do_v the_o like_a what_o need_v we_o any_o more_o here_o be_v bishop_n have_v the_o power_n of_o ordain_v distinguish_v from_o the_o ordain_v sc_n priest_n and_o deacon_n but_o when_o all_o be_v say_v and_o whatever_o sense_n any_o man_n shall_v think_v fit_a to_o put_v upon_o these_o passage_n out_o of_o the_o king_n be_v and_o bishop_n book_n i_o make_v little_a account_n of_o at_o best_a they_o express_v the_o mind_n and_o opinion_n of_o hen._n 8_o cranmer_n and_o other_o bishop_n who_o be_v all_o still_o engage_v and_o hold_v fast_o in_o the_o toil_v of_o popish_a error_n and_o superstition_n all_o their_o design_n hitherto_o in_o these_o book_n be_v only_o to_o cast_v off_o the_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o rest_n they_o continue_v yet_o papist_n all_o over_o cranmer_n himself_o who_o be_v chief_o employ_v in_o draw_v up_o these_o book_n still_o retain_v his_o old_a error_n and_o prejudices_fw-la suck_v in_o with_o his_o milk_n and_o continue_v zealous_a for_o the_o corporal_a presence_n even_o to_o the_o last_o year_n of_o hen._n 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o necessary_a doctrine_n publish_v 1543._o it_o be_v teach_v preface_n that_o in_o the_o ave_fw-la mary_n the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v honour_v and_o worship_v that_o the_o read_v the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v not_o so_o necessary_a as_o of_o duty_n the_o people_n ought_v and_o be_v bind_v to_o read_v it_o but_o as_o the_o prince_n and_o polity_n of_o the_o realm_n shall_v think_v convenient_a that_o the_o public_a law_n of_o the_o realm_n have_v so_o restrain_v it_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n be_v in_o the_o book_n its_o self_n assert_v and_o explain_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a recommend_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n and_o of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n in_o mass_n and_o exequy_n now_o this_o be_v a_o hopeful_a book_n to_o establish_v protestant_a doctrine_n by_o and_o thence_o to_o affirm_v the_o protestant_a church_n of_o england_n be_v of_o the_o mind_n there_o be_v no_o more_o officer_n in_o the_o church_n than_o bishop_n or_o presbyter_n and_o 113._o deacon_n at_o best_a the_o reformation_n be_v but_o now_o on_o the_o anvil_n and_o cranmer_n and_o the_o other_o reformer_n be_v but_o hammer_v it_o out_o by_o degree_n nor_o can_v we_o believe_v they_o always_o or_o at_o that_o very_a time_n declare_v their_o own_o opinion_n full_o and_o free_o hen._n viii_o be_v a_o haughty_a and_o sturdy_n prince_n impatient_a of_o any_o oppósition_n and_o resolve_v to_o assume_v unto_o himself_o all_o the_o pope_n usurp_v power_n cranmer_z and_o his_o associate_n think_v it_o a_o good_a step_n towards_o their_o design_n if_o they_o can_v but_o shake_v off_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o pope_n hope_v after_o this_o point_n once_o gain_v they_o may_v in_o good_a time_n compass_v their_o whole_a design_n and_o establish_v the_o church_n upon_o the_o sure_a foundation_n of_o truth_n to_o please_v then_o the_o humour_n of_o the_o king_n and_o gratify_v his_o pride_n it_o must_v be_v declare_v and_o acknowledge_v forsooth_o by_o the_o bishop_n when_o they_o take_v out_o their_o commission_n as_o cranmer_n himself_o do_v more_o than_o once_o that_o all_o power_n both_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a flow_v from_o the_o king_n that_o the_o bishop_n exercise_v it_o only_o by_o the_o king_n courtesy_n that_o the_o king_n empower_v they_o to_o ordain_v to_o give_v institution_n and_o to_o do_v all_o other_o part_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n of_o which_o opinion_n 1._o cranmer_n himself_o be_v anno_fw-la 1540_o and_o even_o in_o the_o first_o of_o edward_n the_o 6_o the_o or_o pretend_v to_o be_v in_o short_a this_o character_n dr._n burnet_n give_v of_o the_o archbishop_n that_o his_o great_a weakness_n 22._o be_v he_o over_o obsequiousness_n to_o hen._n viii_o there_o be_v then_o no_o colour_n to_o ascribe_v any_o thing_n we_o meet_v with_o in_o these_o book_n as_o the_o free_a and_o settle_a judgement_n of_o cranmer_n much_o less_o as_o the_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o english_a protestant_a church_n and_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v pretend_v by_o these_o testimony_n to_o overthrow_v the_o divine_a right_n of_o bishop_n he_o will_v be_v oblige_v to_o lay_v aside_o the_o divine_a right_n of_o presbyter_n also_o who_o be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n subject_v to_o the_o will_n of_o the_o king_n and_o to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n as_o any_o intent_n reader_n may_v observe_v from_o the_o aforesaid_a passage_n out_o of_o the_o king_n and_o bishop_n book_n and_o so_o much_o of_o this_o matter_n the_o three_o testimony_n object_v against_o we_o be_v the_o celebrate_v 113._o ms._n in_o the_o irenicum_fw-la from_o whence_o we_o be_v inform_v that_o cranmer_n and_o other_o bishop_n set_v forth_o this_o to_o be_v their_o judgement_n that_o bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v one_o office_n in_o the_o beginning_n of_o christ_n religion_n allege_v jerom_n in_o confirmation_n ans._n i_o have_v say_v enough_o of_o jerom_n already_o and_o need_v not_o repeat_v or_o apply_v it_o here_o i_o choose_v 1._o to_o present_a the_o reader_n with_o some_o particular_a account_n of_o that_o ms._n before_o i_o direct_o reply_v to_o the_o objection_n 390._o the_o king_n call_v a_o select_a convention_n of_o bishop_n and_o learned_a doctor_n at_o windsor_n castle_n who_o be_v to_o give_v their_o resolution_n of_o several_a question_n relate_v to_o religion_n every_o one_o under_o his_o own_o hand_n they_o do_v so_o and_o cranmer_n be_v particular_o 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o say_v ms._n those_o which_o belong_v to_o our_o present_a purpose_n be_v quest._n 9_o whether_o the_o apostle_n lack_v a_o high_a power_n as_o not_o have_v a_o christian_a king_n among_o they_o make_v bishop_n by_o necessity_n or_o by_o authority_n give_v they_o of_o god_n ans._n cranmer_n all_o christian_a prince_n have_v commit_v to_o they_o immediate_o of_o god_n the_o whole_a care_n of_o all_o their_o subject_n concern_v the_o administration_n of_o god_n word_n for_o the_o care_n of_o soul_n that_o the_o prince_n have_v sundry_a minister_n under_o he_o as_o bishop_n parson_n vicar_n and_o other_o priest_n who_o be_v appoint_v by_o his_o highness_n unto_o that_o ministration_n that_o the_o say_a officer_n and_o minister_n as_o well_o of_o one_o sort_n as_o of_o the_o other_o be_v appoint_v assign_v and_o elect_v in_o every_o place_n by_o the_o law_n and_o order_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n that_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n when_o there_o be_v no_o christian_a prince_n the_o minister_n of_o god_n word_n be_v appoint_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o christian_a multitude_n among_o themselves_o that_o sometime_o the_o apostle_n send_v and_o appoint_v minister_n of_o god_n word_n sometime_o the_o people_n do_v choose_v they_o and_o those_o send_v and_o appoint_v by_o the_o apostle_n the_o people_n of_o their_o own_o will_n accept_v not_o for_o the_o supremacy_n or_o dominion_n that_o the_o apostle_n have_v over_o they_o to_o command_v as_o their_o prince_n and_o master_n but_o as_o good_a people_n ready_a to_o obey_v the_o advice_n of_o good_a consellor_n quest._n 10._o whether_o bishop_n or_o priest_n be_v first_o if_o priest_n than_o the_o priest_n make_v the_o bishop_n cr._n ans._n the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v at_o one_o time_n and_o
be_v not_o two_o thing_n but_o both_o one_o office_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o christ_n religion_n quest._n 11._o whether_o a_o bishop_n have_v authority_n to_o make_v a_o priest_n by_o the_o scripture_n or_o no_o and_o whether_o any_o other_o but_o only_o a_o bishop_n may_v make_v a_o priest_n cr._n ans._n a_o bishop_n may_v make_v a_o priest_n by_o the_o scripture_n so_o may_v prince_n and_o governor_n and_o the_o people_n also_o by_o election_n the_o people_n do_v common_o elect_v their_o bishop_n and_o priest_n quest._n 12._o whether_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v require_v any_o consecration_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o a_o priest_n or_o only_o appoint_v to_o the_o office_n be_v sufficient_a cr._n ans._n in_o the_o new_a testament_n he_o that_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n or_o a_o priest_n need_v no_o consecration_n by_o the_o scripture_n for_o election_n and_o appoint_v thereunto_o be_v sufficient_a i_o have_v somewhat_o contract_v the_o archbishop_n answer_n but_o so_o as_o to_o preserve_v the_o sense_n full_a and_o entire_a and_o something_n i_o have_v omit_v not_o material_a as_o i_o judge_v here_o to_o be_v set_v down_o these_o question_n and_o answer_n in_o the_o ms._n be_v subscribe_v t._n cant._n and_o this_o be_v my_o opinion_n and_o sentence_n which_o i_o do_v not_o temerarious_o define_v but_o remit_v the_o judgement_n whole_o to_o your_o majesty_n to_o all_o which_o i_o reply_v 1._o that_o though_o these_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o 〈◊〉_d yet_o other_o bishop_n unto_o who_o the_o same_o 〈◊〉_d be_v put_v be_v otherwise_o persuade_v mr._n stripe_n have_v furnish_v we_o with_o 27._o different_a answer_n give_v by_o some_o other_o of_o the_o learned_a doctor_n or_o bishop_n of_o that_o time_n from_o another_o ms._n out_o of_o cotton_n library_n to_o the_o 9th_o question_n the_o call_v name_v appointment_n and_o preferment_n of_o one_o before_o another_o to_o be_v a_o bishop_n or_o priest_n have_v a_o necessity_n to_o be_v do_v in_o that_o sort_n a_o prince_n be_v want_v the_o order_v ordination_n appear_v teach_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o scripture_n per_fw-la manuum_fw-la impositionem_fw-la cum_fw-la oratione_fw-la this_o i_o doubt_v not_o will_v be_v own_a a_o true_a and_o more_o scriptural_a resolution_n of_o the_o question_n than_o cr_n be_v to_o question_v 10_o bishop_n be_v first_o or_o not_o after_o these_o learned_a man_n speak_v here_o cautious_o cranmer_n rash_o and_o round_o pronounce_v to_o quest._n 11._o scripture_n warrant_v a_o bishop_n obey_v the_o 〈◊〉_d to_o order_n a_o priest_n per_fw-la manuum_fw-la impositionem_fw-la cum_fw-la oratione_fw-la and_o so_o it_o have_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n they_o do_v not_o bold_o define_v that_o priest_n and_o bishop_n be_v one_o office_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o christ_n religion_n as_o cranmer_n do_v to_o quest._n 12_o manuum_fw-la impositio_fw-la cum_fw-la oratione_fw-la be_v require_v unto_o the_o make_n of_o a_o bishop_n or_o priest_n so_o as_o only_o appoint_v it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a there_o be_v yet_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o learned_a man_n to_o be_v see_v in_o mr._n stripe_n which_o i_o will_v add_v unto_o the_o former_a 28._o to_o quest._n 9th_o make_v bishop_n have_v two_o part_n appointment_n and_o ordination_n appointment_n which_o by_o necessity_n the_o apostle_n make_v by_o common_a election_n and_o sometime_o by_o their_o own_o assignment_n can_v not_o be_v do_v by_o christian_a prince_n because_o there_o be_v none_o yet_o now_o appertain_v to_o they_o but_o in_o order_v wherein_o grace_n be_v confer_v the_o apostle_n follow_v the_o rule_n teach_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n per_fw-la manuum_fw-la impositionem_fw-la cum_fw-la oratione_fw-la &_o jejunio_fw-la a_o more_o solid_a and_o judicious_a answer_n then_o cranmer_n to_o quest._n 10_o christ_n make_v the_o apostle_n first_o both_o priest_n and_o bishop_n but_o whether_o at_o one_o time_n some_o doubt_n after_o that_o the_o apostle_n make_v both_o bishop_n and_o priest_n the_o name_n whereof_o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v confound_v they_o manifest_o imply_v a_o real_a distinction_n between_o they_o in_o the_o beginning_n though_o they_o be_v one_o in_o name_n or_o rather_o though_o both_o be_v call_v by_o both_o name_n indifferent_o to_o quest._n 11_o the_o bishop_n have_v authority_n from_o his_o prince_n to_o give_v order_n may_v by_o his_o ministry_n give_v to_o he_o of_o god_n in_o scripture_n ordain_v a_o priest_n and_o we_o read_v not_o that_o any_o other_o not_o be_v a_o b._n bishop_n have_v since_o the_o begin_n of_o christ_n church_n ordain_v a_o priest_n n._n b._n to_o quest._n 12_o only_a appointment_n be_v not_o sufficient_a but_o consecration_n that_o be_v to_o say_v imposition_n of_o hand_n with_o 〈◊〉_d and_o prayer_n be_v also_o require_v for_o so_o the_o apostle_n use_v to_o order_n they_o that_o be_v appoint_v and_o so_o have_v be_v use_v continual_o and_o we_o have_v not_o read_v the_o contrary_n from_o the_o whole_a it_o appear_v that_o what_o ever_o be_v cranmer_n opinion_n yet_o other_o be_v of_o a_o contrary_a mind_n it_o can_v then_o be_v true_o affirm_v that_o cranmer_n be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o far_o may_v be_v confirm_v by_o what_o dr._n leighton_n reply_v at_o the_o same_o time_n unto_o the_o query_n 1._o i_o suppose_v that_o a_o bishop_n have_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n power_n from_o god_n as_o be_v his_o minister_n to_o create_v the_o presbyter_n although_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o promote_v any_o one_o unto_o the_o office_n of_o a_o presbyter_n or_o admit_v he_o to_o any_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n unless_o the_o prince_n leave_v be_v first_o obtain_v in_o a_o christian_a commonwealth_n but_o that_o any_o other_o person_n have_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n power_n to_o create_v the_o presbyter_n i_o have_v not_o read_v nor_o learn_v from_o any_o instance_n 2._o i_o suppose_v consecration_n by_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n be_v necessary_a for_o so_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n thus_o much_o dr._n durel_n who_o read_v the_o whole_a ms._n by_o the_o permission_n of_o mr._n st._n report_v out_o of_o it_o 328._o in_o his_o vindiciae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la angli_fw-la the_o judgement_n then_o of_o cranmer_n set_v forth_o in_o that_o ms._n can_v with_o any_o truth_n be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n it_o be_v the_o opinion_n but_o of_o some_o person_n from_o which_o their_o contemporary_n we_o see_v differ_v much_o but_o 2._o the_o argument_n ground_v on_o the_o ms._n belong_v not_o to_o the_o time_n when_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v protestant_a so_o that_o the_o resolution_n of_o those_o query_n be_v rather_o of_o the_o popish_a church_n of_o england_n for_o the_o question_n be_v not_o put_v by_o edw._n vi_o as_o be_v at_o first_o surmise_a but_o by_o hen._n viii_o to_o make_v out_o which_o note_n 1._o the_o manuscript_n have_v no_o date_n nor_o any_o king_n name_v in_o it_o that_o call_v the_o assembly_n at_o windsor_n one_o may_v then_o ascribe_v it_o to_o the_o father_n henry_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o son_n edward_n 2._o cranmer_n submit_v himself_o and_o his_o sentence_n unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o king_n but_o edward_n vi._n be_v a_o child_n too_o young_a and_o unexperienced_a to_o ask_v these_o question_n or_o to_o have_v the_o final_a decision_n of_o they_o refer_v to_o he_o 3._o lee_n archbishop_n of_o york_n who_o subscribe_v the_o answer_n in_o the_o ms._n die_v in_o the_o year_n 1544._o anglicanae_n some_o year_n before_o edward_n be_v king_n by_o which_o argument_n dr._n durel_n say_v he_o convince_v mr._n still_o that_o the_o convention_n be_v hold_v at_o windsor_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o hen._n viii_o not_o of_o edward_n vi._n 4._o in_o mr._n strype_n memor_n the_o king_n make_v his_o animadversion_n upon_o the_o bishop_n answer_n which_o can_v be_v think_v the_o supra_fw-la work_n of_o edw._n vi_o a_o child_n but_o of_o hen._n viii_o 5._o the_o matter_n of_o the_o question_n and_o of_o the_o answer_n of_o cranmer_n sufficient_o prove_v that_o hen._n viii_o convened_a that_o assembly_n at_o windsor_n they_o both_o resemble_v the_o foresay_a king_n and_o bishop_n book_n and_o one_o animadversion_n of_o the_o king_n in_o mr._n stripe_n which_o be_v since_o they_o confess_v appoint_v bishop_n belong_v now_o to_o prince_n how_o can_v you_o prove_v that_o order_v be_v only_o commit_v unto_o you_o bishop_n bewray_v king_n henry_n aspire_v to_o be_v invest_v with_o all_o the_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n even_o of_o ordination_n itself_o of_o which_o see_v more_o in_o his_o memorial_n p._n 16_o 17._o append._n n._n 7._o it._n mem._n 141._o brief_o as_o in_o his_o elder_a brother_n life_n time_n he_o be_v breed_v up_o in_o learning_n that_o he_o may_v be_v alterius_fw-la orbis_n papa_n or_o
archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n so_o after_o he_o be_v king_n the_o ambition_n still_o prevail_v in_o he_o and_o be_v not_o we_o see_v easy_o remove_v 6._o early_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o edw._n vi_o and_o when_o the_o reformation_n be_v go_v on_o prosperous_o cranmer_n and_o the_o protestant_a bishop_n understand_v matter_n better_o and_o have_v freedom_n to_o speak_v their_o mind_n deliver_v themselves_o more_o clear_o in_o the_o point_n as_o may_v be_v infer_v from_o sundry_a observation_n belong_v to_o that_o time_n and_o upon_o record_n as_o 1._o it_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o preface_n before_o the_o form_n of_o ordination_n draw_v up_o and_o agree_v upon_o in_o edw._n vi's_fw-la reign_n that_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d unto_o all_o man_n diligent_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o ancient_a author_n that_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n there_o have_v be_v these_o order_n of_o minister_n in_o christ_n church_n bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n by_o public_a prayer_n and_o with_o imposition_n of_o hand_n approve_v and_o admit_v thereunto_o cranmer_z it_o seem_v be_v now_o come_v over_o to_o dr._n leighton_n opinion_n declare_v in_o the_o day_n of_o hen._n viii_o 2._o cranmer_z set_v forth_o a_o catechism_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o edw._n vi_o anno_fw-la 1548._o wherein_o the_o three_o order_n be_v teach_v as_o of_o 58_o divine_a right_n from_o whence_o say_v the_o historian_n it_o appear_v that_o he_o have_v change_v the_o opinion_n he_o former_o hold_v against_o the_o divine_a institution_n of_o those_o ecclesiastical_a order_n 3_o in_o the_o day_n of_o edward_n vi_o cranmer_n suspend_v heath_n bishop_n of_o worcester_n for_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v the_o forementioned_a form_n of_o ordination_n 4._o in_o the_o same_o reign_n john_n alasco_n a_o noble_a polonian_a be_v by_o cranmer_n mean_v make_v a_o superintendant_n over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o 241._o the_o foreigner_n yet_o new_o plant_v in_o and_o about_o london_n the_o german_n italian_n and_o the_o french_a and_o superintendant_n be_v but_o another_o word_n for_o bishop_n whoever_o therefore_o will_v impartial_o weigh_v the_o darkness_n of_o the_o time_n in_o henry_n viii_n reign_n where_o the_o above_o mention_v king_n and_o bishop_n book_n be_v write_v and_o the_o answer_v make_v unto_o the_o king_n question_n by_o cranmer_n and_o some_o other_o the_o stifness_n of_o that_o prince_n his_o fondness_n of_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o awe_n which_o the_o archbishop_n and_o his_o associate_n in_o the_o reformation_n stand_v in_o towards_o he_o the_o earnest_a desire_n they_o have_v at_o any_o rate_n and_o on_o any_o term_n to_o be_v rid_v of_o the_o pope_n tyranny_n the_o falseness_n uncertainty_n and_o absurdity_n of_o many_o opinion_n deliver_v by_o the_o bishop_n and_o their_o repugnancy_n to_o each_o other_o he_o will_v be_v force_v to_o confess_v that_o no_o stress_n can_v be_v lay_v upon_o any_o of_o their_o conclusion_n much_o less_o that_o they_o be_v the_o first_o and_o steady_a sentiment_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n of_o england_n for_o even_o the_o popish_a clergy_n also_o general_o subscribe_v they_o but_o the_o sudden_a alteration_n of_o the_o bishop_n mind_n as_o to_o this_o present_a point_n in_o debate_n in_o edward_n vi's_fw-la day_n put_v it_o out_o of_o all_o question_n that_o the_o ms._n of_o my_o late_a lord_n of_o worcester_n belong_v to_o king_n henry_n viii_n day_n and_o that_o our_o first_o reformer_n their_o mature_a and_o settle_a judgement_n be_v that_o there_o be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n three_o order_n of_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n by_o divine_a right_n bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n let_v we_o hear_v the_o reflection_n 289._o of_o the_o learned_a prelate_n the_o now_o lord_n bishop_n of_o salisbury_n 250._o in_o cranmer_n paper_n some_o singular_a opinion_n of_o his_o about_o the_o nature_n of_o 〈◊〉_d office_n will_v be_v find_v but_o as_o they_o be_v deliver_v by_o he_o with_o all_o possible_a modesty_n so_o they_o be_v not_o establish_v as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n but_o lay_v aside_o as_o particular_a conceit_n of_o his_o own_o and_o it_o seem_v that_o afterward_o he_o change_v his_o opinion_n for_o he_o subscribe_v the_o book_n that_o be_v soon_o after_o set_v forth_o which_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o those_o opinion_n set_v down_o in_o this_o paper_n viz._n mr._n stillingfleet_n ms._n in_o the_o next_o reign_v it_o be_v no_o matter_n to_o we_o what_o become_v of_o the_o divine_a right_n of_o episcopacy_n the_o protestant_a church_n of_o england_n suffer_v a_o eclipse_n in_o queen_n mary_n day_n but_o soon_o recover_v itself_o under_o the_o auspicious_a government_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n shine_v so_o much_o the_o bright_a and_o in_o a_o short_a time_n come_v to_o that_o settlement_n which_o it_o enjoy_v to_o this_o day_n without_o any_o considerable_a alteration_n and_o to_o our_o present_a point_n 〈◊〉_d 1._o that_o the_o form_n of_o ordination_n of_o deacon_n priest_n and_o bishop_n with_o the_o preface_n before_o speak_v of_o be_v confirm_v in_o the_o four_o of_o eliz._n 1562._o and_o again_o in_o her_o 13_o year_n anno_fw-la 1571._o and_o which_o to_o make_v short_a work_n of_o it_o continues_z in_o force_n unto_o this_o day_n 2._o in_o the_o general_a apology_n of_o the_o protestant_n the_o 5_o article_n of_o the_o english_a confession_n be_v insert_v and_o be_v draw_v up_o in_o that_o queen_n time_n anno_fw-la 1562._o and_o run_v in_o the_o word_n follow_v farthermore_o we_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v divers_a degree_n of_o minister_n in_o the_o church_n deacon_n priest_n and_o bishop_n to_o who_o be_v commit_v the_o office_n to_o instruct_v the_o people_n and_o set_v forth_o of_o religion_n but_o mr._n o._n object_n unto_o we_o the_o 13_o of_o eliz._n c._n 12._o pretend_v to_o prove_v thereby_o that_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n be_v then_o allow_v 118._o here_o in_o england_n the_o clause_n he_o refer_v to_o be_v more_o at_o length_n thus_o all_o person_n under_o bishop_n who_o pretend_v to_o be_v priest_n or_o minister_n of_o god_n holy_a word_n and_o sacrament_n by_o reason_n of_o any_o other_o form_n of_o institution_n or_o consecration_n or_o order_v than_o the_o form_n set_v forth_o by_o parliament_n in_o edw._n vi_o or_o now_o use_v shall_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o bishop_n declare_v their_o assent_n and_o subscribe_v to_o all_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o religion_n which_o only_o concern_v the_o confession_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n comprise_v in_o a_o book_n entitle_v article_n agree_v to_o by_o the_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n of_o both_o province_n and_o the_o whole_a clergy_n in_o convocation_n anno_fw-la 1562._o for_o avoid_v diversity_n of_o opinion_n &c_n &c_n and_o 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n from_o hence_o mr._n o._n infer_v that_o the_o statute_n respect_v not_o popish_a ordination_n only_o if_o at_o all_o but_o give_v indulgence_n to_o those_o that_o be_v not_o satisfy_v to_o subscribe_v all_o the_o article_n absolute_o among_o which_o be_v the_o book_n of_o consecration_n and_o that_o the_o statute_n require_v subscription_n only_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o true_a christian_a faith_n and_o of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o he_o will_v prove_v in_o that_o the_o statute_n speak_v of_o minister_n of_o god_n holy_a word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o the_o title_n of_o minister_n be_v rare_o use_v among_o the_o papist_n and_o be_v common_a among_o the_o reform_a church_n the_o ministry_n among_o the_o papist_n be_v a_o real_a priesthood_n and_o therefore_o they_o call_v their_o presbyter_n priest_n ans._n the_o statute_n doubtless_o speak_v of_o all_o priest_n and_o minister_n whether_o papist_n or_o dissenter_n all_o be_v to_o assent_v and_o subscribe_v in_o case_n they_o will_v continue_v in_o or_o be_v let_v into_o any_o ecclesiastical_a promotion_n but_o chief_o the_o papist_n 〈◊〉_d first_o i_o assert_v this_o upon_o mr._n oh_o own_o word_n the_o ministry_n of_o the_o papist_n say_v he_o be_v a_o real_a priest_n hood_n and_o therefore_o they_o call_v their_o presbyter_n priest_n on_o the_o contrary_a i_o do_v not_o remember_v that_o dissent_v minister_n have_v ever_o be_v style_v priest_n in_o any_o public_a instrument_n of_o church_n or_o state_n now_o as_o for_o the_o word_n minister_n even_o that_o also_o it_o may_v be_v point_v at_o the_o popish_a priest_n for_o it_o have_v late_o be_v use_v among_o the_o papist_n i_o meet_v with_o it_o in_o smith_n recantation_n 171._o in_o the_o necessary_a doctrine_n and_o other_o public_a record_n but_o chief_o i_o consider_v that_o at_o the_o time_n of_o this_o act_n of_o parliament_n the_o popish_a priest_n herd_v themselves_o among_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o go_v by_o the_o name_n and_o under_o the_o disguise_n of_o dissent_v minister_n for_o the_o more_o effectual_a discovery_n
order_n or_o call_v it_o what_o you_o please_v for_o the_o presbyter_n minister_v unto_o the_o people_n as_o effectual_o as_o the_o bishop_n in_o all_o the_o office_n and_o conveyance_n of_o divine_a grace_n and_o on_o this_o account_n be_v the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o much_o as_o the_o bishop_n be_v the_o presbyter_n administer_v the_o sacrament_n preach_v the_o word_n interpret_v scripture_n reprove_v exhort_v encourage_v and_o comfort_n publish_v and_o declare_v authoritative_o and_o ministerial_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n by_o jesus_n christ_n not_o only_o in_o the_o sermon_n but_o after_o solemn_a confession_n of_o sin_n and_o in_o the_o visitation_n of_o the_o sick_a and_o of_o such_o as_o have_v be_v trouble_v in_o mind_n and_o conscience_n in_o short_a to_o they_o in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d administration_n appertain_v that_o principal_a gift_n and_o commission_n receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o sin_n you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v etc._n etc._n thus_o far_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v the_o same_o or_o as_o st._n jerom_n have_v it_o pene_fw-la idem_fw-la gradus_fw-la this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v of_o for_o so_o they_o the_o presbyter_n be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o peculiar_a and_o distinguish_a character_n and_o office_n of_o the_o bishop_n be_v to_o inspect_v govern_v and_o ordain_v presbyter_n and_o succeed_a bishop_n on_o this_o account_n the_o presbyter_n as_o jerom_n also_o speak_v be_v secundus_fw-la gradus_fw-la thus_o much_o we_o own_o and_o free_o confess_v let_v our_o adversary_n make_v the_o best_a of_o it_o they_o can_v i_o do_v suppose_v the_o difference_n and_o preeminence_n and_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n from_o and_o over_o prebyter_n and_o their_o ordain_v power_n be_v sufficient_o clear_v to_o have_v be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o england_n from_o the_o beginning_n though_o blondel_n will_v pick_v out_o of_o this_o treatise_n something_o to_o the_o contrary_a which_o be_v not_o my_o business_n here_o to_o take_v to_o task_n last_o i_o shall_v only_o produce_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o english_a eton_n divine_n in_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n hold_v 1618._o 1619._o the_o bishop_n of_o landaff_n joseph_n hall_n afterward_o bishop_n of_o norwich_n john_n davenant_n and_o samuel_n ward_n have_v approve_v all_o the_o doctrine_n in_o the_o belgic_a confession_n except_o three_o head_n concern_v ecclesiastical_a order_n protest_v that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o english_a church_n by_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n be_v of_o apostolical_a institution_n particular_o landaff_n in_o a_o speech_n run_v through_o the_o three_o head_n or_o chapter_n and_o then_o enter_v this_o protestation_n that_o there_o be_v not_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n nor_o ever_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n a_o equality_n of_o minister_n from_o the_o whole_a i_o gather_v 1._o that_o it_o have_v ever_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n of_o england_n from_o the_o reformation_n that_o there_o be_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o aught_o to_o be_v a_o inequality_n of_o minister_n and_o that_o bishop_n be_v distinct_a from_o and_o superior_a to_o presbyter_n 2._o that_o the_o presbyterian_o and_o particular_o mr._n o._n do_v a_o great_a injury_n unto_o the_o memory_n of_o that_o great_a man_n archbishop_n laud_n and_o through_o his_o side_n unjust_o wound_v all_o that_o defend_v and_o assert_v divine_a right_n of_o episcopacy_n impeach_v they_o of_o novelty_n and_o alter_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n that_o renown_a prelate_n come_v into_o play_n and_o become_v a_o leader_n in_o this_o church_n not_o till_o after_o all_o the_o instance_n which_o i_o have_v allege_v in_o proof_n of_o the_o divine_a right_n of_o bishop_n even_o the_o bishop_n of_o landaff_n and_o his_o english_a colleague_n at_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n be_v not_o inferior_a to_o he_o nor_o be_v it_o in_o laud'_v power_n to_o influence_n their_o opinion_n he_o be_v not_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n till_o the_o year_n 1633._o not_o of_o st._n david_n till_o 1621._o two_o year_n after_o the_o synod_n be_v break_v up_o it_o can_v therefore_o with_o reason_n 〈◊〉_d thought_n that_o these_o excellent_a person_n who_o assist_v at_o that_o assembly_n be_v lead_v by_o the_o nose_n or_o awe_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o dr._n laud._n nor_o do_v i_o find_v that_o he_o be_v any_o way_n interest_v in_o their_o deliberation_n or_o that_o he_o send_v to_o they_o any_o letter_n or_o dispatch_n upon_o that_o or_o indeed_o any_o other_o subject_n it_o can_v hardly_o be_v believe_v since_o so_o many_o of_o the_o calvinistical_a point_n be_v then_o establish_v doubtless_o to_o the_o regret_n of_o this_o prelate_n beside_o dr._n andrews_n have_v before_o laud_n write_v a_o book_n to_o prove_v the_o divine_a right_n of_o bishop_n sure_o not_o sway_v thereto_o by_o laud_n who_o be_v or_o have_v be_v his_o chaplain_n but_o to_o remove_v all_o the_o invidious_a calumny_n and_o reproach_n that_o have_v be_v false_o lay_v upon_o that_o unfortunate_a prelate_n and_o the_o rest_n who_o before_o and_o after_o he_o have_v maintain_v the_o divine_a right_n of_o bishop_n it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o call_v to_o remembrance_n that_o it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o ignatius_n who_o testimony_n it_o be_v needless_a to_o repeat_v any_o more_o also_o of_o st._n cyprian_n jâm_fw-la pridem_fw-la per_fw-la omnes_fw-la provincias_fw-la &_o urbes_fw-la ordinati_fw-la sunt_fw-la episcopi_fw-la and_o what_o he_o 55._o mean_v by_o his_o jam_fw-la pridem_fw-la he_o explain_v elsewhere_o sciam_fw-la episcopos_fw-la plurimos_fw-la ecclesiis_fw-la dominicis_fw-la in_o toto_fw-la mundo_fw-la divina_fw-la dignatione_fw-la praepositos_fw-la 63._o once_o more_o i_o read_v cum_fw-la hoc_fw-la igitur_fw-la omnis_fw-la actus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la 33._o per_fw-la eosdem_fw-la praepositos_fw-la gubernetur_fw-la divina_fw-la 〈◊〉_d fundamentum_fw-la sit_fw-la last_o of_o jerom_n himself_o constituit_fw-la christus_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la finibus_fw-la mundi_fw-la 45._o principes_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la which_o also_o he_o call_v traditionem_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la write_v to_o evagrius_n which_o have_v be_v remember_v before_o now_o if_o some_o of_o laud'_v immediate_a predecessor_n or_o contemporary_n can_v be_v produce_v grant_v this_o as_o be_v of_o another_o mind_n not_o see_v or_o not_o open_o confess_v and_o contest_v the_o truth_n it_o be_v sure_o for_o want_n of_o understanding_n courage_n or_o integrity_n but_o why_o these_o fail_n and_o defect_n shall_v be_v lay_v in_o the_o balance_n with_o the_o undoubted_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n or_o prejudice_v the_o wisdom_n and_o faithfulness_n of_o other_o yea_o the_o public_a and_o authoritative_a declaration_n of_o our_o church_n too_o be_v beyond_o my_o capacity_n to_o comprehend_v this_o be_v out_o of_o question_n i_o judge_v that_o presbyterian_a ordination_n the_o identity_n and_o parity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n have_v never_o yet_o be_v pronounce_v lawful_a much_o less_o of_o divine_a right_n by_o any_o public_a and_o authenticksentence_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n since_o the_o reformation_n except_o haply_o by_o that_o pack_v assembly_n of_o divine_n not_o one_o of_o who_o be_v legal_o choose_v to_o sit_v at_o westminster_n some_o private_a writer_n may_v haply_o be_v find_v incline_v to_o the_o opinion_n whereby_o presbyter_n be_v equal_v unto_o bishop_n and_o think_v to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o degree_n but_o i_o make_v no_o reckon_n of_o such_o private_a authority_n though_o they_o be_v otherwise_o person_n of_o singular_a learning_n wisdom_n and_o piety_n and_o some_o passage_n favour_v the_o presbyterian_a pretence_n may_v possible_o be_v find_v in_o the_o public_a deliberation_n and_o conclusion_n whilst_o hen._n viii_o be_v vindicate_v this_o church_n from_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o his_o stead_n assume_v it_o to_o himself_o thus_o far_o we_o change_v our_o rider_n not_o our_o burden_n but_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o as_o in_o those_o difficult_a time_n the_o episcopal_a power_n be_v subject_v to_o the_o will_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n and_o so_o may_v be_v think_v not_o by_o divine_a right_n but_o humane_a constitution_n even_o so_o be_v the_o power_n and_o office_n of_o parson_n vicar_n and_o priest_n or_o presbyter_n and_o from_o thence_o also_o it_o 〈◊〉_d with_o equal_a force_n that_o these_o also_o be_v but_o by_o humane_a law_n and_o thence_o derive_v their_o authority_n let_v we_o for_o example_n but_o look_v back_o unto_o cranmer_n answer_v to_o the_o king_n be_v 9th_o query_n and_o we_o may_v be_v convince_v hereof_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o be_v that_o the_o whole_a care_n of_o the_o church_n be_v immediate_o commit_v to_o the_o prince_n that_o parson_n vicar_n and_o other_o priest_n be_v to_o be_v appoint_v by_o his_o highness_n to_o their_o ministration_n to_o the_o 10_o the_o query_n
that_o the_o prince_n may_v make_v a_o priest_n he_o that_o will_v infer_v hence_o that_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n at_o that_o time_n bishop_n be_v not_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la but_o by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n must_v be_v also_o force_v to_o conclude_v that_o priest_n and_o minister_n hold_v by_o the_o same_o tenure_n and_o no_o other_o and_o from_o the_o whole_a it_o will_v follow_v that_o mr._n hobbs_n be_v in_o the_o right_n when_o he_o affirm_v the_o will_n and_o law_n of_o the_o prince_n to_o be_v the_o standard_n of_o the_o people_n religion_n furthermore_o we_o be_v often_o confront_v with_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d protestant_n church_n and_o call_v upon_o to_o have_v a_o more_o favourable_a charitable_a and_o just_a opinion_n of_o they_o and_o their_o ministry_n hereunto_o it_o will_v suffice_v i_o only_o to_o answer_v with_o st._n paul_n what_o have_v i_o to_o do_v to_o judge_v they_o that_o be_v without_o but_o i_o far_o consider_v with_o what_o difficulty_n they_o at_o first_o struggle_v and_o still_o labour_n under_o and_o be_o apt_a to_o think_v that_o the_o same_o good_a god_n that_o will_v have_v mercy_n and_o not_o sacrifice_n and_o so_o dispense_v with_o his_o own_o appoint_a sabbath_n may_v and_o i_o hope_v will_v accept_v their_o sacrifice_n though_o they_o be_v not_o prepare_v according_a to_o the_o purification_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n i_o also_o consider_v that_o the_o foreign_a protestant_n be_v by_o this_o time_n many_o of_o they_o even_o the_o most_o learned_a quite_o captivate_v by_o a_o long_a prejudice_n which_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o presbyterian_a government_n among_o they_o for_o so_o many_o year_n since_o the_o reformation_n have_v now_o perhaps_o render_v unconquerable_a and_o that_o therefore_o god_n may_v and_o i_o hope_v do_v wink_v at_o this_o ignorance_n for_o such_o i_o reckon_v a_o inveterate_a prejudice_n to_o be_v beside_o though_o many_o of_o the_o foreign_a protestant_a minister_n have_v zealous_o defend_v the_o presbyterian_a government_n and_o seem_v not_o at_o all_o willing_a or_o incline_v to_o model_n themselves_o into_o the_o episcopal_a platform_n though_o it_o be_v in_o their_o power_n and_o opportunity_n serve_v yet_o other_o of_o they_o have_v be_v contrary_a mind_v and_o even_o in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o that_o darkness_n wherein_o they_o lay_v have_v be_v able_a do_v discover_v the_o truth_n which_o shine_v through_o the_o cloud_n of_o their_o hardship_n and_o prepossession_n i_o will_v not_o here_o mention_v the_o french_a letter_n write_v unto_o the_o present_a honourable_a and_o right_o reverend_a bishop_n of_o london_n mr._n o._n have_v most_o malicious_o suggest_v as_o if_o the_o author_n be_v bribe_v or_o by_o some_o indirect_a mean_n induce_v to_o write_v as_o they_o do_v i_o do_v not_o know_v upon_o what_o authority_n he_o have_v publish_v this_o scandalous_a surmise_n and_o if_o it_o have_v be_v fit_a to_o take_v up_o report_v by_o conjecture_n or_o uncertain_a fame_n mere_o to_o blast_v the_o credit_n of_o a_o writer_n i_o can_v have_v tell_v he_o 〈◊〉_d now_o what_o i_o have_v hear_v from_o one_o who_o be_v no_o stranger_n to_o the_o presbyterian_a intrigue_n in_o 1640._o and_o so_o on_o and_o may_v be_v presume_v to_o speak_v what_o he_o have_v 〈◊〉_d to_o know_v sc_n that_o mounsieur_fw-fr blondel_n come_v into_o england_n with_o hope_n to_o be_v prefer_v in_o our_o church_n by_o archbishop_n 〈◊〉_d but_o it_o seem_v miss_v his_o aim_n that_o he_o be_v afterward_o hire_v by_o the_o presbyterian_o to_o write_v for_o they_o against_o episcopacy_n thus_o revenge_n and_o the_o love_n of_o money_n be_v the_o parent_n of_o that_o celebrate_a book_n entitle_v apologia_fw-la pro_fw-la hieronymi_n sententia_fw-la and_o last_o that_o even_o in_o the_o apology_n its_o self_n some_o thing_n be_v intermix_v which_o undo_v and_o overthrow_v all_o he_o seem_v to_o have_v advance_v in_o defence_n of_o presbytery_n which_o therefore_o he_o be_v force_v to_o expunge_v before_o he_o recover_v the_o promise_a reward_n of_o his_o labour_n but_o after_o this_o let_v we_o now_o hear_v what_o a_o learned_a protestant_n a_o foreign_a divine_a have_v write_v upon_o this_o subject_a i_o mean_v peter_n du_n moulin_n in_o a_o letter_n to_o a_o scotch_a man_n anno_fw-la 1640._o he_o say_v that_o the_o french_a protestant_a church_n never_o put_v down_o bishop_n p._n 6._o nor_o encourage_v other_o to_o do_v it_o that_o necessity_n not_o choice_n keep_v they_o from_o set_v up_o episcopal_a order_n that_o at_o geneva_n where_o episcopacy_n be_v change_v into_o the_o presbyterian_a form_n necessity_n bear_v more_o sway_n than_o council_n and_o policy_n than_o divinity_n that_o the_o reformation_n in_o france_n begin_v among_o the_o people_n in_o scotland_n and_o england_n at_o court_n no_o wonder_n then_o that_o due_a regard_n be_v not_o have_v unto_o the_o primitive_a government_n in_o the_o one_o as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o that_o the_o french_a protestant_n have_v much_o ado_n to_o maintain_v their_o minister_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o poverty_n that_o if_o they_o shall_v establish_v bishop_n it_o will_v provoke_v their_o adversary_n and_o raise_v they_o to_o jealousy_n and_o 〈◊〉_d will_v look_v more_o like_a direct_a schism_n two_o bishop_n be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n in_o onesee_n that_o they_o be_v a_o body_n prepare_v for_o bishop_n when_o bishop_n will_v reform_v he_o give_v a_o instance_n that_o somewhere_o the_o bishop_n in_o his_o cathedral_n preach_v the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o protestant_n submit_v to_o he_o he_o far_o apologise_v that_o their_o king_n will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o have_v bishop_n i_o only_o add_v hereunto_o bishop_n hall_n observation_n how_o that_o when_o our_o bishop_n of_o landaff_n at_o 9_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n charge_v the_o division_n there_o in_o holland_n upon_o their_o want_n of_o episcopacy_n he_o receive_v this_o only_a in_o answer_n domine_fw-la nos_fw-la non_fw-la sumus_fw-la adeo_fw-la faelices_fw-la whether_o this_o be_v speak_v by_o way_n of_o modest_a excuse_n and_o a_o tacit_n approbation_n of_o bishop_n i_o know_v not_o of_o certaitny_n but_o believe_v so_o at_o least_o i_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o a_o shift_a off_o the_o question_n about_o episcopacy_n the_o precedent_n not_o care_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o list_n with_o the_o bishop_n upon_o that_o argument_n but_o if_o he_o intend_v it_o as_o perhaps_o mr._n o._n will_v think_v for_o a_o scoff_n i_o will_v take_v the_o liberty_n to_o say_v that_o as_o the_o highpriest_n prophesy_v a_o great_a truth_n but_o intend_v it_o not_o neither_o understand_v it_o so_o may_v the_o precedent_n too_o stumble_v upon_o a_o great_a truth_n and_o intimate_a episcopacy_n to_o be_v the_o happiness_n of_o a_o church_n though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o be_v otherwise_o persuade_v or_o do_v not_o discern_v it_o for_o there_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o creature_n which_o can_v endure_v the_o light_n and_o by_o how_o much_o clear_a the_o sun_n shine_v see_v so_o much_o the_o worse_o like_o saul_n go_v to_o damascus_n before_o his_o conversion_n be_v strike_v blind_a with_o the_o glory_n and_o lustre_n of_o truth_n which_o surround_v they_o this_o we_o be_v assure_v of_o by_o manifold_a and_o woeful_a experience_n and_o therefore_o need_v not_o wonder_v at_o it_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o understanding_n labour_n under_o the_o same_o natural_a weakness_n as_o those_o of_o the_o body_n do_v when_o we_o have_v continue_v long_o in_o the_o dark_a or_o have_v shut_v our_o eye_n for_o somewhile_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o behold_v the_o object_n of_o sense_n though_o place_v at_o their_o proper_a distance_n and_o in_o a_o medium_fw-la due_o fit_v for_o their_o reception_n thus_o when_o pride_n 〈◊〉_d and_o prepossession_n when_o passion_n sturdiness_n and_o secular_a interest_n when_o contentiousness_n opposition_n and_o hatred_n have_v for_o some_o time_n draw_v a_o veil_n over_o the_o understanding_n it_o be_v not_o easy_a for_o these_o man_n to_o admit_v any_o notion_n that_o thwart_a and_o contradict_v those_o which_o they_o have_v for_o a_o long_a time_n before_o entertain_v let_v the_o evidence_n bring_v for_o their_o conviction_n be_v never_o so_o bright_a and_o clear_a for_o instance_n mr._n o._n as_o have_v be_v note_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n have_v frank_o acknowledge_v it_o as_o fit_v and_o warrantable_a that_o some_o grave_a divine_n be_v set_v over_o the_o church_n for_o peace_n and_o order_n sake_n whilst_o the_o young_a sort_n be_v for_o the_o present_a to_o be_v exclude_v or_o suspend_v from_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o inherent_a power_n now_o mr._n o._n be_v not_o able_a i_o perceive_v to_o see_v that_o this_o very_a reasonable_a concession_n of_o he_o if_o right_o pursue_v and_o improve_v as_o it_o ought_v put_v a_o end_n unto_o
the_o controvery_n for_o though_o he_o have_v so_o frequent_o and_o unreasonable_o at_o every_o turn_n declare_v against_o ecclesiastical_a restraint_n yet_o here_o he_o allow_v they_o and_o suppose_v it_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n to_o restrain_v some_o from_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o power_n and_o to_o reserve_v the_o chief_a care_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n to_o a_o few_o of_o the_o most_o eminent_a here_o i_o say_v than_o the_o cudgel_n be_v in_o effect_n lay_v down_o and_o episcopacy_n be_v sufficient_o vindicate_v and_o approve_v of_o by_o the_o adversary_n himself_o though_o before_o he_o be_v aware_a no_o it_o will_v be_v reply_v for_o still_o care_n must_v be_v take_v that_o it_o be_v not_o however_o admit_v as_o of_o divine_a right_n well!_o but_o if_o a_o ecclesiastical_a right_n be_v sufficient_a to_o oblige_v we_o unto_o obedience_n to_o our_o superior_n as_o in_o the_o concession_n its_o self_n he_o must_v suppose_v then_o have_v our_o reverend_a bishop_n a_o good_a title_n to_o their_o own_o power_n and_o to_o our_o subjection_n to_o '_o they_o beside_o how_o easy_a be_v it_o to_o improve_v this_o concession_n even_o to_o the_o vindication_n of_o the_o divine_a right_n of_o bishop_n for_o if_o mr._n o._n who_o when_o he_o suffer_v himself_o to_o think_v be_v i_o be_o hereby_o convince_v a_o wise_a man_n and_o see_v far_o before_o he_o will_v but_o turn_v himself_o about_o and_o look_v the_o other_o way_n that_o be_v behind_o he_o i_o mean_v will_v but_o admit_v st._n paul_n and_o the_o apostle_n heretofore_o to_o have_v be_v as_o wise_a as_o himself_o be_v now_o it_o will_v be_v no_o hard_a matter_n one_o will_v imagine_v to_o convince_v he_o present_o of_o the_o divine_a that_o be_v apostolical_a constitution_n of_o bishop_n if_o it_o be_v now_o it_o be_v also_o in_o the_o apostle_n day_n fit_a and_o reasonable_a to_o commit_v the_o care_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o some_o grave_a and_o worthy_a presbyter_n and_o if_o so_o can_v we_o possible_o believe_v the_o apostle_n do_v not_o appoint_v what_o their_o own_o reason_n and_o prudence_n suggest_v to_o they_o but_o let_v we_o pass_v to_o another_o instance_n mr._n stoddon_n in_o his_o pastoral_a charge_n have_v confess_v 108._o that_o there_o be_v ruler_n in_o the_o church_n who_o be_v not_o teacher_n as_o appear_v plain_o to_o i_o say_v he_o from_o 1_o tim._n 5._o 17._o although_o i_o suppose_v the_o power_n of_o preach_v be_v commit_v to_o they_o something_o of_o this_o kind_n i_o have_v in_o the_o precedent_a paper_n offer_v myself_o and_o can_v far_o confirm_v it_o out_o of_o mr._n mede_n if_o it_o be_v worth_a the_o while_n and_o suit_v my_o design_n but_o mr._n stoddon_n again_o distinguish_v between_o what_o be_v primary_o and_o what_o be_v secondary_o 106._o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la as_o bishop_n sanderson_n long_o before_o he_o have_v do_v and_o to_o be_v short_a be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o clergy_n have_v as_o much_o need_n to_o have_v a_o governor_n set_v over_o they_o as_o the_o common_a people_n themselves_o and_o that_o if_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o express_o appoint_v it_o yet_o the_o reason_n and_o necessity_n of_o the_o thing_n do_v absolute_o require_v it_o or_o to_o this_o effect_n for_o at_o present_a i_o have_v not_o the_o book_n by_o i_o and_o sure_o the_o apostle_n know_v this_o and_o by_o experience_n too_o as_o well_o as_o mr._n stoddon_n now_o i_o can_v comprehend_v what_o shall_v hinder_v this_o gentleman_n come_v over_o to_o we_o but_o the_o inveterate_a prejudices_fw-la which_o he_o can_v part_v with_o or_o a_o stiffness_n and_o aversion_n to_o change_v his_o opinion_n for_o which_o his_o old_a friend_n will_v be_v sure_a to_o reproach_v he_o without_o 〈◊〉_d in_o a_o word_n then_o it_o be_v to_o very_o little_a purpose_n to_o pretend_v by_o the_o dint_n of_o argument_n to_o make_v proselyte_n one_o may_v happy_o comfort_v encourage_v and_o confirm_v some_o in_o the_o truth_n which_o they_o already_o know_v and_o profess_v but_o to_o convert_v any_o there_o be_v very_o little_a hope_n see_v most_o man_n have_v a_o overween_a opinion_n of_o themselves_o and_o the_o party_n which_o they_o have_v espouse_v there_o i_o leave_v they_o not_o expect_v they_o will_v be_v reclaim_v from_o the_o evil_n of_o their_o way_n till_o god_n shall_v open_v their_o eye_n and_o by_o some_o secret_a and_o powerful_a influence_n dispose_v their_o heart_n unto_o the_o knowledge_n and_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o truth_n or_o else_o by_o some_o visible_a judgement_n and_o affliction_n constrain_v we_o unto_o unity_n which_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n some_o man_n be_v afraid_a of_o they_o have_v not_o stick_v to_o declare_v that_o a_o agreement_n will_v certain_o destroy_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o people_n and_o introduce_v tyranny_n among_o we_o a_o paradox_n which_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v 〈◊〉_d stranger_n to_o and_o which_o all_o good_a man_n i_o hope_v do_v utter_o abhor_v but_o pray_v we_o for_o the_o peace_n of_o jerusalem_n they_o shall_v prosper_v that_o love_n it_o peace_n be_v between_o its_o wall_n and_o plenteousness_n within_o its_o palace_n and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o man_n that_o be_v not_o a_o son_n of_o peace_n let_v he_o be_v anatkema_n 〈◊〉_d addenda_fw-la to_o the_o 19_o the_o chapter_n there_o be_v a_o objection_n which_o escape_v i_o in_o its_o proper_a place_n and_o therefore_o must_v here_o be_v consider_v it_o be_v that_o presbyterian_a order_n have_v be_v allow_v here_o in_o england_n that_o peter_n martyr_n bucer_n p._n fagius_n etc._n etc._n be_v suffer_v to_o exercise_v their_o ministry_n among_o we_o ans._n 1._o allowance_n against_o a_o establish_v law_n be_v not_o very_o defensible_a especial_o when_o that_o law_n be_v believe_v to_o be_v of_o divine_a right_n which_o be_v the_o case_n here_o before_o we_o of_o ordination_n by_o bishop_n let_v this_o then_o be_v put_v among_o the_o infirmity_n and_o mistake_n of_o our_o first_o reformer_n 2._o our_o first_o reformer_n may_v think_v it_o justifiable_a in_o charity_n to_o foreign_a protestant_a church_n which_o have_v not_o the_o opportunity_n of_o episcopal_a ordination_n the_o present_a necessity_n and_o service_n of_o the_o church_n require_v it_o the_o reformation_n otherwise_o will_v have_v receive_v some_o stop_n or_o prejudice_n by_o bring_v this_o point_n into_o controversy_n for_o some_o such_o like_a reason_n as_o this_o it_o be_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o k._n james_n i._o send_v delegate_n unto_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n and_o content_v herself_o after_o the_o conclusion_n there_o make_v only_o to_o enter_v her_o protestation_n against_o the_o parity_n of_o minister_n 3._o our_o first_o reformer_n haply_o go_v upon_o this_o principle_n he_o that_o be_v not_o against_o we_o be_v for_o we_o and_o such_o be_v peter_n martyr_n bucer_n fagius_n etc._n etc._n but_o our_o dissenter_n be_v always_o against_o we_o make_v it_o their_o whole_a business_n to_o overturn_v the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n of_o this_o nation_n by_o rail_v and_o revile_v and_o represent_v it_o as_o popish_a and_o antichristian_a 4._o the_o indulgence_n speak_v of_o have_v in_o it_o perhaps_o more_o of_o state_n policy_n than_o true_a divinity_n and_o be_v to_o be_v reckon_v as_o the_o act_n of_o the_o civil_a government_n rather_o than_o of_o the_o church_n thus_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o huguenot_n minister_n have_v ever_o even_o to_o this_o day_n be_v permit_v to_o officiate_v in_o divine_a thing_n without_o episcopal_a order_n 5._o all_o these_o indulgence_n 〈◊〉_d not_o amount_v to_o the_o destroy_v the_o truth_n of_o that_o principle_n concern_v the_o divine_a right_n of_o episcopacy_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o relaxation_n of_o the_o execution_n of_o a_o positive_a law_n can_v in_o reason_n be_v account_v the_o annul_n or_o abolition_n of_o that_o law_n as_o we_o see_v at_o this_o day_n when_o liberty_n be_v give_v to_o the_o very_a dregs_o of_o enthusiastical_a and_o fanatical_a sectary_n which_o be_v no_o more_o prejudice_n unto_o episcopacy_n than_o it_o be_v to_o other_o acknowledge_a truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n 6._o as_o for_o those_o particular_a person_n allow_v to_o exercise_v their_o minstry_n here_o in_o england_n we_o may_v note_v that_o peter_n martyr_n be_v in_o episcopal_a order_n and_o it_o may_v be_v other_o of_o they_o be_v also_o but_o there_o be_v a_o story_n which_o i_o be_o oblige_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o because_o mr._n b._n my_o first_o adversary_n object_v it_o to_o we_o he_o affirm_v the_o protestant_a bishop_n of_o england_n former_o approve_v of_o presbyterian_a ordination_n as_o he_o infer_v from_o a_o passage_n about_o the_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n spotswood_n and_o other_o the_o case_n be_v this_o in_o the_o year_n 1609_o some_o scotchman_n be_v
to_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n edit_n and_o a_o synod_n be_v hold_v by_o our_o english_a bishop_n for_o that_o purpose_n dr._n andrews_n bishop_n of_o ely_n say_v that_o they_o ought_v first_o to_o be_v ordain_v presbyter_n as_o have_v not_o be_v ordain_v by_o bishop_n but_o by_o presbyter_n only_o bancroft_n archbishop_n of_o c._n maintain_v that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o that_o because_o where_o bishop_n can_v not_o be_v have_v ordination_n though_o by_o presbyter_n only_o must_v be_v esteem_v lawful_a else_o it_o may_v be_v doubt_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o lawful_a vocation_n in_o most_o of_o the_o reform_a church_n this_o applaud_v to_o by_o the_o other_o bishop_n ely_z acquiesce_v from_o hence_o i_o infer_v not_o that_o the_o protestant_a bishop_n of_o england_n approve_v of_o presbyterian_a ordination_n but_o that_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o this_o english_a synod_n nothing_o but_o necessity_n can_v justify_v it_o now_o what_o degree_n of_o necessity_n be_v requisite_a i_o will_v not_o here_o dispute_v 2._o that_o where_o episcopal_a ordination_n may_v be_v have_v there_o presbyterian_a ordination_n be_v unlawful_a 3._o that_o the_o necessity_n here_o plead_v in_o defence_n of_o presbyterian_a order_n imply_v that_o episcopal_a ordination_n be_v of_o divine_a right_n otherwise_o it_o have_v be_v impertinent_a to_o excuse_v presbyterian_a ordination_n only_o from_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o but_o i_o crave_v leave_n to_o interpose_v my_o own_o judgement_n and_o i_o humble_o conceive_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o fly_v unto_o this_o refuge_n of_o necessity_n for_o still_o the_o ordination_n of_o these_o scotch_a gentleman_n may_v have_v proceed_v salvo_n etiam_fw-la episcopalis_fw-la ordinationis_fw-la jure_fw-la divino_fw-la for_o i_o do_v affirm_v that_o by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n a_o layman_n may_v be_v immediate_o elevate_v into_o the_o throne_n and_o effectual_o receive_v the_o episcopal_a character_n without_o be_v first_o ordain_v deacon_n and_o priest_n this_o latter_a be_v indeed_o more_o safe_a and_o regular_a in_o ordinary_a nevertheless_o in_o extraordinary_a case_n the_o former_a have_v be_v practise_v thus_o the_o learned_a dr._n cave_n have_v observe_v that_o monk_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v make_v bishop_n christianity_n without_o go_v through_o the_o usual_a intermediate_v order_n of_o the_o church_n he_o instance_n in_o serapion_n apollo_n agathus_n ariston_n etc._n etc._n mention_v by_o st._n athan._n tom._n 1._o p._n 957._o however_o this_o be_v i_o shall_v produce_v two_o notable_a and_o unquestionable_a instance_n of_o it_o the_o first_o be_v of_o nectarius_n p._n c._n he_o be_v but_o a_o catechumen_n 265._o i._n e._n a_o unbaptised_a christian_n if_o i_o may_v so_o say_v one_o of_o the_o senatorian_a order_n and_o a_o praetor_n be_v nominate_v and_o choose_a bishop_n of_o constantinople_n when_o greg._n nazianzen_n have_v abdicate_v it_o and_o immediate_o 714._o after_o 〈◊〉_d be_v ordain_v bishop_n without_o the_o intermediate_v order_n of_o deacon_n or_o presbyter_n the_o other_o be_v of_o st._n ambrose_n bishop_n of_o milan_n he_o also_o a_o catechumen_n 30._o only_o and_o at_o that_o time_n the_o consular_a governor_n of_o the_o province_n be_v choose_v and_o after_o baptism_n ordain_v bishop_n thereof_o 19_o without_o the_o intermediate_v order_n of_o deacon_n or_o presbyter_n for_o a_o bishop_n according_a to_o st._n chrysostom_n maxim_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d have_v in_o he_o the_o whole_a ministerial_a power_n i_o allege_v this_o principal_o with_o this_o design_n to_o vindicate_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o scotch_a episcopal_a ordination_n the_o end_n errata_fw-la part_n i._o page_n 1._o line_n 17._o read_v manage_n l._n 18._o r._n endeavour_v p._n 5._o l._n 9_o r._n diocesan_n p._n 6._o l._n 33._o r._n epist._n 2._o 1._o 6._o p._n 12._o l._n 40._o r._n denote_v p._n 13._o l._n ult_n r._n designat_fw-la p._n 15._o l._n 34._o r._n the_o for_o that_o p._n 23._o l._n 3._o r._n angel_n ibid._n l._n 37._o after_o they_o add_v be_v p._n 24._o l._n 5._o r._n haggai_n ibid._n l._n 20._o r._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ibid._n l._n 33._o after_o manner_n add_v to_o be_v p._n 28._o l._n 28._o after_o that_o add_v they_o p._n 32._o l._n 25._o r._n month_n p._n 46._o l._n 2._o r._n argument_n p._n 52._o l._n 3._o r._n conclude_v p._n 65._o l._n 25._o r._n successor_n p._n 67._o l._n 35._o r._n pretend_v p._n 73._o l._n 17._o after_o of_o add_v the_o people_n p._n 76._o l._n 15._o 1._o gal._n 2._o 9_o p._n 80._o l._n 5._o r._n penance_n part_n ii_o page_n 21._o line_n 7._o read_v bold_a p._n 22._o l._n 38._o r._n christian_n ibid._n l._n 45._o for_o no_o r._n do_v p._n 42._o l._n 24._o r._n maximinus_n p._n 45._o l._n 11._o r._n asturica_n p._n 51._o l._n 33._o r._n council_n p._n 55._o l._n 26._o r._n counterfeit_v p._n 59_o l._n 4._o r._n valid_a ibid._n l._n 8._o r._n intrinsic_a p._n 62._o l._n 3._o r._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ibid._n l._n 9_o r._n receive_v ibid._n l._n 11._o deal_n be_v ibid._n l._n 43._o r._n ordain_v p._n 63._o l._n 15._o r._n ischyras_n p._n 74._o l._n 16._o r._n adversary_n p._n 76._o l._n 26._o for_o this_o r._n the_o p._n 82._o l._n 35._o deal_n be_v p._n 92._o l._n 23._o r._n liberty_n p._n 102._o l._n 18._o r._n joannes_n ibid._n l._n 37._o r._n because_o p._n 106._o l._n 37._o r._n dislike_n ibid._n l._n 43._o r._n out_o p._n 108._o l._n 3._o r._n sufficient_a p._n 109._o l._n 2._o r._n divers_a p._n 110._o l._n 10._o r._n voluntary_a p._n 112._o l._n 35._o deal_n that_o l._n 37._o r._n ceterosque_fw-la p._n 114._o l._n 28._o r._n counsellor_n p._n 117._o l._n 32._o after_o day_n deal_n p._n 119_o l._n 37._o r._n bishop_n p._n 123._o l._n 37._o r._n intrigue_n ibid._n l._n seq_n r._n opportunity_n ibid._n r._n monsieur_n gal._n 5._o v._n 3._o def._n p._n 25._o see_v justellus_n def._n p._n 26._o calv._n ep._n 136._o baz_n ep._n 29._o def._n p._n 27._o vide_fw-la office_n of_o visitation_n of_o the_o sick_n def._n p._n 68_o def._n p._n 74._o def._n p._n 79._o def._n p._n 82._o and_o so_o be_v barnabas_n also_o def._n p._n 84._o def._n p._n 85._o jo._n ep._n 1._o 2._o 1_o pet._n 5._o 1._o deut._n 18._o 15._o 1_o cor._n 7._o 6._o 12._o 25._o def._n 88_o 89._o def._n ibid._n def._n p._n 90._o synop._n crit._n 〈◊〉_d p._n 91._o def._n p._n 95._o def._n p._n 97._o see_v office_n of_o consecrate_v presbyter_n in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d def._n p._n 48._o def._n p._n 77._o euseb._n hist._n l._n 2._o c._n 1._o theodoret._n hist._n l._n 5._o c._n 9_o e._n hist._n l._n 2._o c._n 23._o l._n 4._o c._n 22._o jer._n cat._n ser._n def._n p._n 54._o 54._o de_fw-fr repub._n dial._n 8._o 8._o polit._n l._n 3._o c._n 7_o 8._o 8._o thalia_n or_o l._n 3._o c._n 80._o 80._o in_o libel_n de_fw-fr mon._n olig_n &_o dem._n dem._n lexic_fw-la voce_fw-mi 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d arist._n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la def._n p._n 99_o 100_o 101_o 102_o 103._o p._n 99_o 100_o def._n p._n 102._o def._n p._n 103._o def._n p._n 103._o 103._o de_fw-fr serie_fw-la &_o success_n p._n 73._o def._n p._n 104._o def._n p._n 106._o sc._n edit_n par._n eus._n h._n e._n l._n 3._o c._n l._n 23._o l._n 5._o c._n 24._o 24._o de_fw-fr praescrip_n adv_fw-la haer._n c._n 32._o def._n p._n 108._o 108._o dan._n 10._o 13._o ch_n 12_o 1._o 1_o thes._n 4._o 16._o judge_n 9_o col._n 1._o 16._o ***_o ep._n ad_fw-la corinth_n cont_n celsum_fw-la l._n 5._o p._n 250._o edit_fw-la cant._n comment_n in_o dan._n c._n 7._o 2._o 2._o comment_fw-fr in_o zach._n 1._o 8._o dan._n 7._o 2._o 2._o strom._n l._n 6._o 6._o homil._n in_o cap._n 3._o s._n lucae_n lucae_n cont._n parmen_fw-la l._n 2._o p._n 44_o 45._o ed._n mer._n casaub._n tit._n 1._o 5._o 11._o 13._o 2._o 15._o 3._o 10._o 2_o tim._n 4._o 10._o 〈◊〉_d poem_n 27._o p._n 169._o sopbron_n &_o hierom._n in_o cat._n scrip._n eccles._n def._n p._n 121._o tit._n 1._o 5._o t._n n._n p._n 64._o def._n p._n 122._o 122._o catal._n scr_n scr_n cod._n 254._o col._n 1041._o mr._n bur._n def._n p._n 124._o in_o dissertat_fw-la de_fw-fr serie_fw-la &_o success_n p._n 75._o def._n p._n 124._o 124._o near_o 700._o 700._o or_o 38._o 1_o tim._n 3._o 14_o 15._o def._n p_o 126._o def._n p._n 126._o def._n p_o 129._o def._n p._n 130._o def._n p._n 131._o def._n p._n 131._o def._n p._n 132._o def._n p._n 133._o def._n p._n 134._o def._n p._n 134._o 134._o as_o mr._n o._n have_v elsewhere_o suppose_v hesych_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d cortex_fw-la arboris_fw-la arboris_fw-la as_o also_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o smooth_a piece_n of_o wood_n to_o write_v on_o tabula_fw-la def._n p._n 135._o def._n p._n 138._o 2_o tim._n 4._o 21._o
i_o find_v it_o his_o plea_n will_v have_v have_v something_o in_o it_o sure_o relate_v to_o this_o new_a chronology_n in_o fine_a that_o mr._n o._n thought_n of_o the_o bishop_n argument_n before_o the_o rector_n book_n come_v forth_o be_v not_o material_a but_o that_o he_o think_v of_o it_o before_o the_o rector_n propose_v it_o to_o he_o we_o have_v only_o his_o own_o word_n for_o it_o which_o be_v not_o much_o worth_n in_o this_o case_n of_o self-testimony_n yea_o grant_v this_o also_o i_o have_v good_a reason_n to_o believe_v he_o derive_v this_o part_n of_o his_o knowledge_n from_o bishop_n pearson_n for_o a_o reason_n best_o know_v to_o myself_o mr._n o._n have_v wonderful_o demonstrate_v from_o 2_o tim._n 4._o 9_o 21._o 163._o that_o paul_n send_v for_o timothy_n to_o he_o at_o rome_n what_o no_o body_n ever_o deny_v and_o yet_o he_o have_v not_o hereby_o prove_v that_o timothy_n be_v ever_o in_o the_o apostle_n company_n after_o he_o be_v beseech_v to_o abide_v at_o ephesus_n it_o be_v not_o out_o of_o doubt_n to_o i_o that_o timothy_n see_v paul_n at_o rome_n though_o he_o send_v for_o he_o for_o not_o to_o speak_v of_o other_o obstacle_n paul_n may_v have_v be_v martyr_a by_o the_o emperor_n be_v special_a and_o sudden_a command_n before_o timothy_n reach_v rome_n this_o be_v very_o likely_a if_o we_o consider_v the_o state_n of_o affair_n at_o rome_n about_o that_o time_n as_o we_o read_v they_o set_v forth_o in_o the_o annal_n of_o paul_n what_o i_o except_v against_o in_o dr._n whitaker_n be_v not_o that_o which_o mr._n o._n pretend_v to_o make_v answer_n to_o but_o that_o he_o assert_v equal_n can_v receive_v accusation_n as_o timothy_n do_v this_o the_o dr._n prove_v if_o mr_n prinn_n wrong_v he_o not_o from_o a_o synod_n of_o bishop_n who_o receive_v a_o accusation_n against_o one_o of_o their_o own_o number_n and_o then_o censure_v he_o for_o his_o fault_n now_o how_o far_o this_o be_v from_o a_o proof_n of_o what_o it_o be_v allege_v for_o i_o show_v at_o large_a and_o mr._n o._n who_o tax_n i_o for_o so_o do_v overlook_v it_o nor_o make_v any_o reply_n to_o it_o indeed_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v answer_v if_o it_o 〈◊〉_d true_a as_o i_o think_v none_o will_v deny_v that_o one_o bishop_n be_v not_o equal_a but_o inferior_a and_o subject_a to_o a_o synod_n of_o bishop_n therefore_o a_o synod_n receive_v a_o accusation_n against_o a_o bishop_n be_v no_o proof_n of_o the_o doctor_n be_v assertion_n but_o a_o instance_n of_o the_o contrary_n as_o for_o mr._n oh_o own_o example_n out_o of_o st._n cyprian_n be_v they_o never_o so_o convince_a which_o shall_v in_o its_o place_n be_v consider_v they_o will_v not_o however_o vindicate_v dr._n whitaker_n nor_o be_v a_o proper_a answer_n to_o my_o exception_n against_o he_o the_o proportion_n of_o diocese_n how_o large_a at_o most_o they_o ought_v to_o 166._o be_v be_v not_o my_o business_n to_o determine_v as_o i_o undertake_v not_o to_o define_v how_o big_a a_o parish_n or_o congregation_n ought_v to_o be_v i_o suppose_v the_o ultimum_fw-la quod_fw-la sic_fw-la and_o the_o limit_n quos_fw-la ultra_fw-la citraque_fw-la nequit_fw-la consistere_fw-la rectum_fw-la be_v in_o both_o uncertain_a and_o be_v only_o to_o be_v adjust_v prout_fw-la viri_fw-la prudentes_fw-la definiverint_fw-la as_o superior_n shall_v think_v fit_a to_o order_n and_o not_o by_o the_o caprice_n and_o humoursome_a fancy_n of_o every_o overween_a opinionanist_n and_o self_n conceit_v reformer_n mr._n o._n hear_v the_o rector_n parish_n have_v four_o or_o five_o chapel_n in_o it_o 167._o ans._n the_o rector_n parish_n have_v neither_o five_o nor_o four_o chapel_n in_o it_o though_o the_o minister_n ear_n be_v never_o so_o long_o yet_o be_v he_o mistake_v herein_o if_o it_o have_v twenty_o it_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n mr._n o._n because_o the_o rector_n affirm_v it_o no_o more_o impossible_a for_o 178._o timothy_n suppose_v then_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n mention_v rev._n 2._o to_o leave_v his_o first_o love_n than_o for_o judas_n to_o betray_v his_o master_n be_v mighty_o disturb_v and_o to_o confute_v it_o muster_n up_o many_o commendation_n give_v of_o timothy_n in_o scripture_n ans._n in_o t._n n._n i_o declare_v my_o opinion_n plain_o that_o timothy_n be_v not_o that_o angel_n there_o speak_v of_o yet_o suppose_v it_o it_o be_v not_o impossible_a for_o timothy_n to_o be_v guilty_a of_o some_o defection_n the_o commendation_n alone_o render_v it_o not_o impossible_a abstract_v from_o matter_n of_o fact_n then_o that_o judas_n a_o apostle_n who_o have_v the_o power_n of_o cast_v out_o devil_n shall_v turn_v apostate_n be_v as_o strange_a as_o that_o timothy_n shall_v leave_v his_o first_o love_n last_o when_o it_o be_v for_o his_o turn_n mr._n o._n can_v admit_v that_o timothy_n may_v be_v overtake_v with_o youthful_a lust_n but_o when_o he_o want_v a_o occasion_n of_o cavil_v then_o it_o be_v monstrous_a horrid_a to_o suppose_v it_o possible_a for_o timothy_n to_o be_v guilty_a of_o some_o defection_n from_o the_o truth_n if_o the_o one_o be_v possible_a why_o not_o the_o other_o but_o especial_o if_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d speak_v of_o 2_o tim._n 2._o 22._o signify_v the_o lust_n of_o the_o mind_n its_o proneness_n to_o paradox_n to_o new_a upstart_a opinion_n curious_a conceit_n and_o innovation_n in_o religion_n of_o which_o kind_n we_o reckon_v presbytery_n and_o independency_n which_o be_v but_o of_o yesterday_o and_o the_o product_n of_o mind_n addict_v unto_o novelty_n i_o do_v not_o find_v commentator_n ordinary_o expound_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d youthful_a i._n e._n fleshly_a lust_n but_o to_o the_o sense_n i_o have_v now_o give_v they_o in_o a_o word_n whoever_o attentive_o read_v rev._n 2._o 2_o 3_o 6._o will_v find_v considerable_a commendation_n of_o the_o angel_n of_o ephesus_n perhaps_o not_o much_o inferior_a to_o those_o of_o timothy_n in_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n and_o yet_o this_o angel_n leave_v his_o first_o love_n it_o be_v not_o impossible_a then_o but_o timothy_n may_v do_v so_o likewise_o i_o have_v now_o do_v with_o mr._n oh_o defence_n if_o i_o have_v leave_v any_o thing_n of_o moment_n unanswered_a or_o if_o i_o have_v fail_v give_v full_a satisfaction_n to_o any_o material_a difficulty_n object_v against_o i_o i_o do_v promise_n either_o to_o supply_v these_o defect_n or_o fair_o to_o confess_v myself_o unable_a only_o i_o can_v wish_v all_o personal_a reflection_n and_o unnecessary_a digression_n may_v be_v lay_v aside_o that_o argument_n be_v plain_o propose_v and_o 〈◊〉_d as_o few_o word_n as_o may_v be_v that_o no_o trickish_a and_o evasive_a answer_n be_v make_v when_o we_o have_v nothing_o else_o to_o reply_v and_o final_o that_o we_o will_v not_o take_v to_o taste_v a_o piece_n of_o a_o argument_n and_o the_o weak_a part_n of_o it_o too_o and_o then_o make_v the_o reader_n believe_v we_o have_v full_o account_v for_o the_o difficulty_n when_o in_o truth_n we_o keep_v ourselves_o all_o the_o while_n at_o a_o distance_n and_o never_o come_v near_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o cause_n the_o second_o part_n wherein_o all_o mr_n owen_n authority_n for_o presbyterian_a parity_n and_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n be_v overthrow_v and_o particular_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n ever_o since_o the_o reformation_n hold_v the_o divine_a apostolical_a right_n of_o episcopacy_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n one_o ought_v to_o endure_v to_o the_o utmost_a rather_o than_o divide_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o die_v rather_o than_o rend_v it_o in_o piece_n be_v a_o no_o less_o glorious_a martyrdom_n and_o in_o my_o opinion_n great_a than_o be_v a_o martyr_n for_o not_o sacrifice_v unto_o idol_n in_o this_o latter_a case_n a_o man_n suffer_v for_o his_o own_o sake_n only_o in_o the_o former_a for_o the_o whole_a church_n dionys._n alexand._n apud_fw-la euseb._n eccl._n hist._n l._n 6._o c._n 45._o london_n print_v in_o the_o year_n 1699._o the_o introduction_n have_v speak_v of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o general_n and_o as_o far_o as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n afford_v we_o any_o light_n have_v thence_o show_v that_o mere_a presbyter_n alone_o do_v never_o exercise_v any_o supreme_a act_n of_o jurisdiction_n of_o any_o kind_n that_o can_v be_v there_o discover_v except_o in_o conjunction_n with_o and_o subordination_n to_o some_o extraordinary_a officer_n as_o apostle_n or_o prophet_n have_v in_o particular_a trace_v the_o manner_n of_o government_n at_o ephesus_n unto_o the_o death_n of_o st._n john_n the_o apostle_n and_o the_o martyrdom_n of_o st._n ignatius_n and_o find_v it_o cast_v by_o st._n paul_n into_o the_o same_o form_n as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v at_o this_o day_n
of_o these_o fox_n and_o to_o unkennel_v they_o for_o the_o security_n of_o the_o flock_n as_o well_o as_o to_o curb_v the_o dissenter_n themselves_o minister_n be_v think_v a_o fit_a word_n to_o be_v add_v unto_o the_o act_n to_o the_o end_n none_o may_v escape_v subscribe_v mr._n oh_o 〈◊〉_d here_o turn_v upon_o himself_o whilst_o he_o distinguish_v where_o the_o law_n do_v not_o contrary_a to_o that_o wise_a rule_n of_o interpret_n law_n beside_o these_o word_n in_o the_o statute_n who_o pretend_v to_o be_v priest_n or_o minister_n by_o reason_n of_o any_o other_o form_n of_o institution_n or_o consecration_n or_o order_n than_o the_o english_a then_o in_o force_n do_v in_o my_o opinion_n plain_o and_o more_o open_o strike_v at_o the_o popish_a ordination_n the_o great_a design_n of_o that_o reign_n especial_o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v to_o extirpate_v the_o romish_a priest_n it_o may_v be_v urge_v that_o the_o dissent_v minister_n by_o subscribe_v those_o article_n which_o only_o belong_v unto_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n be_v to_o be_v admit_v or_o continue_v in_o their_o benefice_n and_o by_o consequence_n their_o ordination_n allow_v though_o they_o do_v not_o declare_v their_o assent_n unto_o the_o ceremony_n and_o tradition_n nor_o to_o the_o 20_o and_o 36th_o article_n of_o religion_n ans._n this_o can_v be_v for_o i_o shall_v show_v anon_o that_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o subscribe_v those_o two_o article_n which_o if_o they_o do_v ex_fw-la animo_fw-la they_o must_v of_o necessity_n forth_o with_o enter_v into_o episcopal_a order_n and_o approve_v of_o and_o use_v church_n ceremony_n which_o be_v what_o the_o statute_n aim_v at_o nor_o as_o mr._n o._n argue_v do_v the_o subscription_n seem_v to_o intend_v those_o only_a who_o scruple_v tradition_n and_o ceremony_n and_o not_o the_o other_o doctrine_n in_o the_o 39_o article_n which_o be_v the_o case_n of_o the_o dissenter_n alone_o for_o the_o papist_n scruple_n many_o other_o of_o the_o 39_o article_n which_o also_o be_v to_o be_v assent_v unto_o but_o be_v not_o scruple_v by_o the_o presbyterian_a dissenter_n though_o other_o dissent_v minister_n haply_o do_v and_o though_o the_o papist_n scruple_n not_o ceremony_n and_o tradition_n in_o general_n yet_o they_o scruple_n we_o in_o particular_a by_o consequence_n be_v intend_v in_o the_o act_n as_o much_o and_o more_o than_o the_o dissenter_n mr._n o._n because_o the_o assent_n and_o subscription_n be_v only_o to_o the_o article_n of_o religion_n concern_v the_o confession_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n therefore_o a_o indulgence_n be_v intend_v the_o dissent_v minister_n who_o scruple_v nothing_o else_o but_o ceremony_n and_o the_o book_n of_o consecration_n which_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v not_o require_v to_o be_v subscribe_v and_o assent_v to_o and_o by_o consequence_n ordination_n by_o presbyter_n be_v here_o allow_v ans._n all_o i_o have_v to_o do_v be_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o 20_o and_o 36th_o article_n among_o the_o 39_o be_v by_o this_o statute_n require_v to_o be_v subscribe_v and_o assent_v to_o and_o thus_o i_o prove_v it_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o 39_o article_n be_v mean_v in_o this_o statute_n viz._n from_o these_o word_n in_o the_o act_n article_n agree_v to_o by_o the_o archbishop_n and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o both_o province_n and_o the_o whole_a clergy_n in_o convocation_n anno_fw-la 1562._o for_o avoid_v diversity_n of_o opinion_n in_o religion_n oh_o but_o cry_v mr._n o._n it_o be_v mean_v of_o such_o article_n only_o as_o concern_v the_o confession_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n which_o the_o two_o aforesaid_a article_n do_v not_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v oppose_v it_o seem_v unto_o the_o 20_o and_o 36th_o article_n ans._n it_o be_v very_o absurd_a in_o my_o judgement_n to_o interpret_v act_n of_o parliament_n in_o so_o loose_a a_o manner_n which_o be_v wont_a to_o speak_v more_o correct_o and_o with_o great_a exactness_n and_o if_o this_o have_v be_v intend_v the_o statute_n will_v certain_o have_v except_v the_o two_o article_n i_o rather_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o religion_n here_o mention_v be_v oppose_v to_o other_o article_n of_o the_o queen_n set_v forth_o in_o the_o 6_o of_o her_o reign_n anno_fw-la 1564._o and_o to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o collection_n of_o dr._n sparrow_n etc._n call_v article_n 〈◊〉_d doctrine_n and_o preach_v for_o administration_n of_o prayer_n and_o 〈◊〉_d for_o certain_a order_n in_o ecclesiastical_a polity_n apparel_n or_o person_n ecclesiastical_a and_o sundry_a other_o protestation_n all_o which_o be_v enjoin_v by_o the_o queen_n letter_n and_o authority_n only_o unto_o which_o this_o statute_n do_v not_o direct_v a_o assent_n and_o subscription_n but_o to_o the_o 39_o only_o which_o for_o distinction_n sake_n be_v entitle_v article_n of_o religion_n and_o in_o allusion_n thereto_o be_v so_o call_v in_o the_o statute_n to_o all_o these_o 39_o article_n call_v 〈◊〉_d of_o religion_n all_o priest_n and_o minister_n be_v to_o subscribe_v and_o this_o be_v enact_v as_o well_o for_o the_o avoid_v diversity_n of_o opinion_n as_o establish_v of_o consent_n touch_v true_a religion_n moreover_o by_o ceremony_n we_o common_o understand_v thing_n of_o mere_a humane_a or_o ecclesiastical_a institution_n these_o indeed_o consider_v every_o one_o single_o by_o itself_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o true_a christian_n faith_n right_o but_o the_o 20_o article_n which_o in_o general_n define_v and_o declare_v it_o to_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n to_o appoint_v some_o decent_a ceremony_n 〈◊〉_d a_o principle_n or_o proposition_n which_o belong_v unto_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n as_o be_v found_v on_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o with_o the_o rest_n be_v to_o be_v subscribe_v the_o book_n of_o consecration_n confirm_v in_o the_o 36th_o article_n contain_v the_o scripture_n rule_n of_o ordination_n by_o bishop_n and_o so_o concern_v the_o true_a christian_a faith_n it_o be_v then_o to_o be_v assent_v unto_o final_o that_o i_o have_v not_o mistake_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o statute_n or_o the_o lawgiver_n intendment_n i_o will_v support_v my_o interpretation_n by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o great_a oracle_n of_o the_o law_n and_o other_o reverend_a judge_n before_o he_o subscription_n require_v of_o the_o subscription_n clergy_n be_v twofold_a one_o by_o force_n of_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n confirm_v and_o establish_v the_o 39_o article_n of_o religion_n agree_v upon_o at_o a_o convocation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o ratify_v by_o queen_n eliz._n c._n 12._o refer_v to_o canon_n make_v by_o the_o clergy_n of_o england_n at_o a_o convocation_n hold_v at_o london_n 1562._o contain_v 39_o article_n of_o religion_n and_o ratify_v as_o aforesaid_a he_o add_v that_o in_o smith_n case_n who_o subscribe_v the_o 39_o article_n of_o religion_n with_o this_o addition_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o the_o same_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v resolve_v by_o wray_n chief_a justice_n and_o all_o the_o judge_n of_o england_n that_o this_o subscription_n be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o statute_n of_o the_o 13_o eliz._n because_o the_o statute_n require_v a_o absolute_a subscription_n that_o this_o statute_n be_v make_v for_o avoid_v diversity_n of_o opinion_n which_o be_v the_o scope_n of_o the_o act_n but_o by_o this_o addition_n the_o party_n may_v by_o his_o own_o private_a opinion_n take_v some_o of_o they_o to_o be_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n contrary_n to_o the_o design_n of_o the_o statute_n and_o the_o 39_o article_n themselves_o belike_o smith_n intend_v to_o decline_v subscribe_v unto_o the_o 20_o and_o 36th_o article_n hereby_o then_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o this_o act_n intend_v no_o indulgence_n unto_o the_o dissenter_n nor_o allowance_n of_o presbyterian_a order_n in_o king_n james_n the_o first_o be_v reign_v be_v publish_v a_o book_n entitle_v tractatus_fw-la de_fw-la politia_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la anglicanae_n by_o dr._n mocket_n the_o than_o archbishops_n chaplain_n whereunto_o the_o author_n annex_v jewel_n apology_n the_o great_a and_o less_o catechism_n the_o public_a liturgy_n the_o 39_o article_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o homily_n now_o because_o blondel_n build_v upon_o these_o i_o ought_v at_o least_o to_o examine_v the_o treatise_n and_o the_o catechism_n the_o latter_a i_o can_v get_v a_o sight_n of_o and_o shall_v at_o present_v only_o look_v into_o the_o former_a from_o whence_o it_o may_v be_v collect_v that_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n be_v twofold_a the_o first_o have_v respect_n unto_o all_o the_o faithful_a of_o the_o whole_a flock_n the_o second_o unto_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n as_o to_o the_o former_a it_o be_v acknowledge_v that_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v the_o same_o degree_n of_o office_n or_o